i .V,: THE HOLY WAR MADE BY KUVG SHADBM UPOJV DMBOLUS; TO REGAIN s:fie awtetroiJolis ni the 212^orlti. THE LOSING AND TAKING AGAIN OF THE TOWN OF MANSOUL. BY JOHN BUNYAN. Author of " The Pilgrim's Progress,'' <^c. t^c. With Explanatory, Experimental, and Practical Notes. BY THE REV. G. BURDER. Author of Village Sermons, Kotes on Pilgrim's Progress, ^-c PUBLISHED BY JAMES KAY, JUN. AND BROTHER, PHILADELPHIA 122 Chestnut Street— near 4th. JOHN L KAi^ & CO., PITTSBURGH. JOHN BUNYAN'S ADVERTISEMEJN'T TO THE READER. Some say the piigrim's progress is not mine, Insinuating as if I would shine In name and fame by the wor*h of another, Like some made rich by robbing of their brother": Or that, so fond I am of being sire, I'll father bastards, or, if need require, I'll tell a lie in print to get applause: I scorn it; John such dirt-heap never was Since God converted him. Let this suffice To show why I my Pilgrim patronize. It came from mine own heart; so to my head. And thence into my fingers tickled; Then to ray pen, from whence immediately On paper I did dribble it daintily. Manner and matter too were all mine own. Nor was it unto any mortal known Till I had done it. Nor did any then My books, by wits, by tongues, or hand or pen Add five words to it, or write half a line; Therefore, the whole, and every whit is mine. Also for this, thine eye is now upon, The matter in this manner came from none But the same heart, and head, fingers, and pen. As did the others. Witness all good men: For none in all the world without 2 lie, Can say that this is mine excepting I. I write not this of any ostentation, Nor 'cause I seek of men their commendation; I do it to keep them from such surmise, As tempt them will my name to scandalize; Witness my name, if anagram'd to thee. The letters make Nu hony in a B. JOHN BUNYAN. PREFACE BY THE EDITOR. Mr Buntak was a wonderful man. Called by divine grace out of a state of ignorance, vice, and obscurity, he became, \yith- out the aid of human culture, a most useful minister of the gospel, and a very eminent writer: — a writer so eminent, that though he has been dead more than a century, his works still live, and are deservedly popular; particularly his allegorical works— the Pilgrim's Progress and the Holy War. Few bookf have ever been so often printed, or so much admired as the for mer. In that charming work, the christian life is represented under the figure of a journey, and the pilgrim is conducted through a thousand remarkable incidents, from his native city of Destruction, to Heaven, the city of God. In the Holy War, the same subject is treated in a military manner. The fall and recovery of man are represented by two remarkable revolutions in the town of Mansoul. The human soul is figuratively con- sidered as a beautiful and prosperous town, seduced from its obedience to Shaddai, its builder and governor, by the strata- gems of Diabolus, his inveterate enemy; but the town, after a tedious war, is again recovered by the victorious arms of Imman- uel, the king's son. This military view of the subject is strictly consonant with the sacred scriptures, M'hich represent the christian life as a warfare, Christ as a captain, the believer as a soldier of Jesus Christ, the preaching^of the gospel as the weapons of the holy war, and the graces of the Spirit as so many parts of the heavenly armour. Mr Bunyan was better qualified than most ministers to treat this subject with propriety, having himself been a soldier; and knowing, by experience, the arts and the hardships of war. Indeed, he has conducted the whole work with singular ingenuity and skill. He displays through- out, his accurate knowledge of the Bible and its distinguishing doctrines; his deep acquaintance with the heart; and its desper- ate wickedness; his knowledge of the devices of Satan, and of the prejudices of the carnal mind against the gospel. He proves himself to have had an extensive knowledge of christian expe- rience, of the power of conscience, of the excellency of faith, of the misery arising from doubts and fears, of the danger of A 2 vi PREFACE BY THE EDITOR. carnal- security, and of the necessity of crucifying the flesh, with its affections and lusts. The grace and love of our Lord Jesus Christ are sweetly delineated in the character of his Im- manuel; and the powerful influences of the Holy Spiritare finely described in the character of the Secretary. A vast fund of experimental religion is treasured up in this book; -vvhile the in- struction is conveyed in the foi'ra of entertaifiment and amuse- ment; and occasionally, a smile excited by the singular propriety of the unusual names assigned to the numerous characters in- troduced. To render this edition of the Holy War more agreeable than any former one, the same metliod is pursued as in the Editor's edition of the Pilgrim's Progress. The work is divided into chapters of a moderate length, an improvement which this work certainly wanted. Proper pauses are necessary to relieve the attention of the reader, as well as to allow time for reflection, and to assist the memory. A considerable number of explana- tory and practical notes are subjoined, intended to render the author's designs more conspicuous; to impress a useful hint, which might otherwise be passed over too hastily, and to point out some of those latent beauties, which might else escape a cursory rea- der. In attempting this, the Editor has availed himself of the author's mar^nalkey, with which he has endeavoured to unlock every division of the curious cabinet, and to expose the valuable contents. From the very favourable reception which his edition of the Pilgrim has obtained from the public, he entertains a hope that the present volume may prove equally acceptable and useful. GEORGE BURDER. Coventry ^ Jan. 30, 1803. JOHN BUNYAN'S ADDRESS TO THE READER. 'TIS strange to me, that they that love to tell Things done of old^ yea, and that do excel Their equals in historiology, Speak not of Mansoul's wars hut let them lie Dead, like old fables, or such worthless things, That to the i"eader no advantage brings: When men like them make what they will their own. Till they know this, are to themselves unknown. Of stories I well know there's divers soi-ts, Some foreign, some domestic; and reports Are thereof made, as fancy leads the writers; (By books a man may guess at the inditers.) Some will again of that which never Avas, Nor will be, feign (and that without a cause) Such matter, raise such mountains, tell such things Of men, of laws, of countries, and of kings; And in their story seem to be so sage, And with such gravity clothe every page, That though their frontispiece says all is vain, Yet to their way disciples they obtain. But, readers, I have somewhat else to do, Than with vain stories thus to trouble you; What here I say, some men* do know so well. They can with tears of joy the story tell. The town of Mansoul is well known to many, Nor are her troubles daubted of by any That are acquainted witii those historiesf That Mansoul and her wars anatomize. Then lend thine ear to w hat I do relate Touchinjj ihe town of Mansoul, and her state; How she was lost, took captive, made a slave; And how against him set, that should her save; Yea, how by hostile ways she did oppose Her lord, and with his enemy did close: For they are ti'ue, he that will them deny Must needs the best of records vilify. ♦ True Christians. f The Scriptures. JOHN BUNY\N'S For my part, I myself was in the town, Both when 'twas set up, and Avhen pulling downj I saw Diabolus in its possession, And Mansoul also uniler his oppression. Yea, I was there when she own'd him for lord. And to him did submit with one accord. When Mansoul trampled upon things divine, And wallowed in filth as doth a swine: When she betook herself unto her arms, Fought her Imraanuel, and despis'd his charms;* Then I was there, and sorely griev'd to see Diabolus and Mansoul so agree. Let no man, then, count me a fable-maker, Nor moke my name or credit a partaker Of their derision; what is here in view, Of mine own knowledge I dare say is true. 1 saw the prince's armed men come down By troops, by thousands, to besiege the town; I saw the captains, heard the trumpets sound, And how his forces cover'd all the ground: Yea, how they set themselves in battle 'ray, I shall remember to my dying day. I saw the colours waving in the wind, And they within to mischief how combin'd To ruin Mansoul, and to take away H-er primum mobilef without delay. I saw the mounts cast up against the town. And how the slings were plac'd to beat it down. I heard the stones fly whizzing by my ears; (What's longer kept in mind, than got in fears? I heard them fall, and saw what work they made. And how old INIorst did cover with his shade The face of Mansoul, and I heard her cry, Woe worth the day, "in dying I shall die! I saw the battering-rams, and how they play'd To beat up Ear gate; and I was afraid, Not only Ear-gate, but the very town Would by those battering-rams be beaten down. I saw the fights, and heard the captain s§ shout, And in each battle saw who fac'd about: I saw who wounded were, and who were slain. And who, when dead, would come to life again. I heard the cries of those that wounded were (While others fought like men bereft of fear.) His counsels. t Her intention of restoring Man- soul. Some intimations of this published. Care of Diabolus to suppress them. His artifices to secure the town, and prevent its return to Shaddai 56 Chap. IV. — Shaddai sends an army of 40,000 to reduce Mansoul, under the direction of four caitains, Boaner- ges, Conviction, Judgment and Execution, who address the inhabitants with great energy, but to little purpose ; Diabolus, Incredulity, Ill-pause, and others interposing to prevent submission. Prejudice defends Ear-gate with a guard of sixty deaf men 45 Chap. V. — The captains resolve to give them battle. The town resolutely resists, and the captains retire to Winter- xii CONTENTS. quarters. Tradition, Human-wisdom, and Man's-iiu- vention enlist under Boanerges, but are taken prisoners, and carried to Diabolus; they are admitted soldiers for him under Captain Any-thing. Hostilities are renewed, and the town much molested. A famine and mutiny in Mansoul. They sound a parley. Propositions made and rejected. Understanding and Conscience quarrel with Incredulity. A skirmish ensues, and mischief done on both sides 60 Chap. YI. — Lord Understanding and Mr Conscience im- prisoned as authors of the disturbance. A conference of the besieging officers, who agree to peti4;ion Shaddai for further assistance. The petition approved at court. Immanuel, the King's Son, is appointed to conquer the town. Marches with a great army, and surrounds Man- soul, which is strongly fortified against him 72 Chap. VH. — Immanuel prepares to make war upon Man- soul. Diabolus sends Mr Loth-to-stoop Avith proposals for peace. These proposals being dishonom-able to Im- manuel, are all rejected. Again Diabolus proposes to patch up a peace by reformation, offering to become Im- manuel's deputy in that business. This proposal also re- jected. New preparations made for battle. Diabolus expecting to be obliged to abandon the town, does much mischief. Ear-gate, violently assaulted by the battering-rams, at length gives way, and is broken to pieces. Immanuel's forces enter the town, and take possession of the Recorder's house. Several mischievous Diabolonians are killed 87 Chap. VIII. — The principal inhabitants hold a conference, and agree to petition the prince for their lives. The cas- tle-gate broken open. Immanuel marches into Man- soul. Diabolus is made prisoner raid bound in chains. The inhabitants, greatly distressed, petition again and again. At length a free pardon is obtained, and uni- versal joy succeeds 101 Chap. IX. — The liberated prisoners return to Mansoul, Avhere they are received with great joy. The inhabit- ants request Immanuel to take up his residence among them. He consents. Makes a triumphal entry amidst the shouts of the people. The town is new-modelled, and the image of Shaddai erected 118 Chap. X. — The strong holds of Diabolus destroyed. ' In- credulity, Forget-good, Lustings, and other Diaboloaians CONTENTS. xiii apprehended, tried, and executed, to the great joy of Man soul 129 Chap. XI. — Mr Experience is made an officer. The char- ter of the town i-enewed, and enlarged with special pri- vileges. The ministiT" of the Gospel regularly establish- ed under the direction of the secretary. Mr Conscience ordained a preacher, and his duty particularly specified. Directions how to behave to the ministers. The in- habitants clad in white, and receive many other distin- guishing favours from the Prince. God's peace is ap- pointed to rule. The unexampled felicity ofthe town 145 Chap. XIT. — Carnal-security prevailing in the town, a coolness takes place between the inhabitants and Imma- nuel, who being greatly offended, privately withdraws. Godly-fear, who detects the cause of his removal, excites the people to destroy Carnal-security. Measures are tlien taken to induce Immanuel to return 159 Chap. XIII. — The Diabolonians take courage from the departure of Immanuel, and plots are formed in Hell for a counter-revolution in Mansoul. Covetousness, Lasciviousness, and Anger, by changing their names, are introduced into respectable families, where they cor- rupt their masters, and do incredible mischief. An army of twenty thousand Doubters raised to surprise the toAvn 170 Chap. XIV. — The plot discovered by Mr Prywell. Pre- parations made for defence. More Diabolonians exe- cuted. Tlie army of Doubters approach the town. An assault made upon Ear-gate, Avhich is repelled. The Drummer beats a parley, which is disi'egarded. Diabo- lus attempts to deceive by flatteiy, but is answered by the Lord-Mayor. Jolly and Griggish, two young Dia- bolonians, executed. Gipe and Rake-all hanged. Any- thing and Loose-foot imprisoned 188 Chap. XV. — The inhabitants of Mansoul make a rash sortie on the enemy by night, but are repulsed with loss. Diabolus makes a desperate attack upon Feel-gate, which, being weak, he forces, and his army of Doubters possess the town and do incredible mischief. The in- habitants sorely aggrieved, determine on a new applica- B xiv CONTENTS. tion to Immanu^, and procure the assistance of the Se- cretary in preparing the petition, which is presented by Captain Credence. He is favourably received, and ap- pointed lord-lieutenant over all the forces 205 Chap. XVI. — A new plot is laid to ruin the town by riches and prosperity. Immanuel, according to his promise, appears in the field, to assist the forces of Man- soul, whereby the whole army of Doubters is completely routed. Immanuel enters the town amidst the joyful acclamations of the inhabitants 219 Chap. XVII. — A new array of Blood-men, or persecutors, attack the town, but are surrounded by the Mansoulians, headed by Faith and Patience. The examination of some of the leaders. Evil-questioning entertains some of the Doubters, but is discovered by Diligence. The principal Doubters tried, convicted, and executed 231 Chap. XVIII. — More Diabolonians tried and condemned. The work concludes with an admirable speech of Im- manuel, reciting his gracious acts, and informing his people of his intention to rebuild the town with the greatest splendour, and recommending a suitable con- duct in tiie mean time 244 THE HOLY WAR, CHAPTER I. The onginal beauty of the town of Mansoul, while under the dominion of SHADDAI. A dreadful revolution effected in it by the subtlety of Diabolus. Captain Resistance, and my Lord Innocency slain. IN my travels, as I walked through many regions and coun- tries, it was my chance to arrive at that famous continent of ^ . . r. Universe.* A very large and spacious country JJescription oj .^.^. .^ j.^^j^ between the two poles, and just tlie -world. amidst the four points of the heaven. It is a place well watered, and richly adorned with hills and valleys, bravely situated; and for the most part (at least where I was) very fruitful: also well peopled, and a very sweet air. The people are not all of one complexion, nor yet of one lan- guage, mode, or way of religion; but differ as much (it is said) as do the planets themselves: some are right, and some are wrong, even as it happeneth to be in lesser regions.! In this country, as I said, it was my lot to travel; and there travel I did, and that so long, even till I had learned much of their mother-tongue, together with the customs and manners of them among whom I was. And, to speak truth, I was much ^ ^ , , _ delighted to see and hear many things which I ^ natural state ^ x. i ^u ti^4 1.^ , . , saw and heard among them: yea, 1 had, to be ij 1 sure, even lived and died a native among them (I ■ was so taken with them and their doings,) had not my Master sent for me home to his house, there to do business for him, and to oversee business done.:j: Now there is, in the gallant country of Universe, a fair and delicate town, a corporation called Mansoul; a town for its building so curious, for its situation so commodious, for it« privileges so advantageous (I mean with reference to its original,) * Universe: The world at large is here intended, displaying the wisdom, power, and goodness of the great Creator. t Sin has introduced universal disorder into the world. Its original har- mony and beauty are lost. I The author' refers to his own experience before his conversion, and his being called by grace to serve the Lord Chriit as a minister in his church. 16 THE HOLY WAR. that I may say of it, as was said before of the continent in Avhich it is placed, " There is not its efjuai under the whole lieaven."* As to the situation of this town, itlieth between the two worlds: ScribUires ^"^ ^^^ ^* "^^ tounder and builder of it, so far as by the best and most authentic records I can gatlier, The AlmighUj?\''l ?"^^"^^°°^^5t and he builfit forliisown -^ -^ deliglit, Gen. i. 26. He made it the mirror and glory of all that he made, even the top-piece, beyond any thing else that he did in that country. Yea, so goodly a town was Created angels, Mansoul, when first built, that it is said by ■^ some, tlie gods, at the setting up thereof, came down to see it, and sung for joy. And as he made it goodly to behold, so also mighty to have dominion over all the country round about. \"ea, all were commanded to acknowledge Man- soul for their metropolitan, all were enjoined to do homage to it. Aye, the town itself had positive commission, and power from her King, to demand service of all, and also to subdue those that any-ways denied it. There was reared up in the midst of this town, a most famous The heart ^"^^ stately palace: for strength it may be called a castle; for pleasantness, a paradise: for largeness, a place so copious as to contain all the world, Eccles. iii. 11. This place, the King Shaddai intended but for himself alone, and not another with him: partly because of his own deligbts, and partly because he would not that the terror of strangers Tiph - ^should be upon the town. This place Shaddai ., -^ , "^ made also a garrison of; but he committed the keeping of it only to the men of the town. The walls of tlie town were well built: yea, so fast and firm Thelndi ^^'d'e they knit and compacted together, that, had it '^' not been for the townsmen themselves, they could not have been shaken or broken for ever. For here lay the ex- cellent wisdom of him that built Mansoul, that the walls could never be broken down nor hurt, by the most mighty adverse potentates, unless the townsmen gave consent thereto. | * By the town of Mansoul, as every i-cadcr must perceive, is intended The Soul of Man; figuratively represented, throug^hout this work, as a to\\n. Just commendation is here given of it; for the human soul, in its original state, was truly glorious, bearing the holy and happy image of God himself. ■f Shaddai. This is a name of God often used in the Old Testament, but translated ALMIGHTY. It is a Hebrew word, signifying dll-sufficienf, or Jllmightij. It is derived from the Hebrew word for the breast, wlucb aftbrds nourishment to young creatuns ; and so intimates, that we derive all our support from God, as the lielpless infinu from the laotlier's breast. This name is, in this work, applied to God the Father. X The poweis of the soul are very capacious, and the body itself, before the introduction of sin, was firm and stroiigy. Notliing but sin, voluntarily ad matted, cmild have iiijuixd either. BY JOHN BUNYAN 17 This famous town of Mansoul had five gates, at which to come out, and at which to go in; and these were made likewise _,, ^ answerable to the walls, to wit, impregnable, and 1 fie Jive senses. ^^^^^^ ^^ ^^^^^ ^^^^^ ^^ opened nor forced, but h^- tlie will and leave of those within. The names of the gates are these: Ear-gate, Eye-gate, Mouth-gate, Nose-gate, and Feel- gate.* Other things there were that belonged to the town of Mansoul, which, if you adjoin to these, Avill yet give further demonstra- tion to all, of the glory and strength of the place. It had always 'Ph t f f ^ sufficiency of provision within its walls; it e s a e of ^^^ ^^^ ^ ^^^^ Avholesome and excellent Mansou. at ^rst. j^^^^^ ^^^^ ^^^^^ ^^^^ ^^^^^^ i,^ ^^^ ^^.„^,^^ There was not a rogue, rascal, or traitorous person then within its walls; they were all true men, and fast joined together; and this, you know, is a great matter. And to all these, it had always, so long as it had the goodness to keep true to Shaddai, the king, his countenance, his protection, and it was his delight, kef Well, upon a time there Avas one Diabolus, a mighty giant, made an assault upon the famous town of Mansoul, to take it, D 'Is th ^'^^ make it his own habitation. This giant was fV^^ ^ J king of the Blacks or Negroes, and a most raving jauenangeis. ^^.^^^^ ^^^ ^^^^^ .^^^ ^^jjj^ j^. ^^^^ please, first rp, . . ^ discourse of the original of this Diabolus, and then ine origin oj ^^^.^ ^^^^.^^ ^^^^.^ famous tow., of Mansoul. ^ jj.aooius. ^.j^.^ Diabolus is indeed a great and mighty prince, and jet both poor and beggarly. As to his original, he was at first one of the servants of King Shaddai, by whom he was made, and raised to a most high and mighty place, yea, and was put into such principalities as belonged to the best of his territories and dominions, Isa. xiv. 12. This Diabolus was made son of the morning, and a brave place he had of it: it brought him much glory, and gave him much brightness: an income that might have contented his Luciferiau heart, had it not been in- satiable, and enlarged as hell itself. Well, he seeing himself thus exalted to greatr.ess and honour, „ . , , . ,, and raging in his mind for higher state and degree, • n-^A / what doth he but begin to think with himself, mUiaboius. ^^^^ ^^ might be set up as lord over all, and have * The five senses are very properly described as so many gates of the city, for these are the doors by w'hich fjood or evil must enter t God made man upright, and entered into a covenant of life with him, the condition of which was his perfect obedience. t Diabolus is the Greek and Latin name for the Devil, and properly sig^nl- fies the Calumniator or Accuser. The word is used, in Scripture, collective- B* iS THE HOLY WAR. the sole power under Shaddai, 2 Pet. ii. 4. Jude G. (Now that did the king reserve for his Son, yea, and he had already be- stowed it upon him.) Wherefore he first consults uith himself what had best to be done? and then breaks his mind to some others of his coinpanions, to -which they also agreed. So, in fine, they came to this issue, that they should make an attempt upon the King's Son to destroy him, that the inheritance might be theirs. Well, to be short, the ti'eason, as 1 said, was con- cluded, the time appointed, the word given, the rebels ren- dezvoused, and the assault attempted. Now the King and his Son, being all and always eye, could not but discern all passages „, , 7 . ,. in his dominions; and behaving alwavs a love Shaddai disco- r i • q c \- ^c 11 / * u X , for his Son, as tor hmmselt, could not, at what vers treason and, u / 1 .i i i i a- i i , ,,. he saw, but be greatly provoked and otteiuled: . . , -^ wherefore what does he, but takes them in the ■^ ■ very nick, and the first trip that they made towards their design, convicts them of the treason, horrid re- bellion, and conspiracy that they had devised, and now attempted to put into practice, and casts them altogether out of all places of trust, benefit, honour and preferment: this done, he banishes them the court, turns them down into horrid pits; never more to expect the least favour from his hands, but to abide the judgment thathe had appointed, and that for ever and ever.* Now they being thus cast out of all places of trust, profit and honour, and also knowing that they had lost their Prince's fa- vour for ever, being banished his court and cast down to the hor- rible pits, you may be sure they would now add to their formei pride what raalice and rage against Shaddai, and against his Son, they could, 1 Pet. v. S. Wherefore roving and ranging in much fury from place to place (if perhaps they might find something Ijr, for the wliole bodv of f;i!len spiriis, whose original state of holiness ami liappiness the author describes. * The scripture iuforiiis us that the devils were once angels, and that they sinned, (2 Pot. ii. 4.) Yv*e are not expressly told what their sin was, yet it may be ])resumed (from 1 Tim. iii. 6.) that it was pride; and it is generally thought ihat their pride consisted in opposition to the deci-ee of God concern- iug liis Son .hsus Christ, who was to be lord of the whole crcat'oii. (Psalm ii. 6, 7.) Of this, however, we arc certain, that " they kept not their first es- tate ;'' (.rude ver. 6.)— they did not retain their priuiitive integrity, but " left their own habitation;" they relinquished, and were, b)' the righteous judg- ment of God, cast down from the mansions of bliss and glory which would have been their everlasting habitaticn had they not sinned ; but "God spared them not,'" i'ov their first sin; he hurlid them down, with righteous iiuligna- lioji, into some unknown place of misery, called The Deep and T'le Bot- t )m!ess Pit, and has reserved them in chains of darkness, like condemned prisoners, unto tlie judgment of the great day, when their torment will be complrttd, and they shall be forever confined to that fire whicli is prepared for Uiubulus aad liis associates. BY JOHN BUNYAN. 19 that was tlie King's,) to revenge themselves on him, by spoiling that; at last they happened iutotliis spacious country of Dniverse, and steered their course towards the town of Mansoul: and con- sidering tliat the town was one of the chief works and delights of King Shaddai; Avhat do they, but after counsel taken, make an assault upon that. I say, they knew that Mansoul belonged unto Shaddai: for they were there when he built, and beautified it for himself.* So when they had found the place, they shout- ed horribly for joy, and roared on it like as a lion on its prey; saying, now we have found the prize, and how to be revenged on „ . -f f King Shaddai for Avhat he hath done to us. So , '^•' 7*^ they sat down, and called a council of war; and war hf ul 01/ ■' . , i • i ^i, i i ^ , n- I r i considered with themselves, what ways and rae- ■1,7 thods they had best engage in, tor tlie winning ^. . J to themselves this famous town of Mansoul; and ■? nr these four things were then propounded to be to~v?i of Jfaii- • J J r , •' considered ot. ' First, Whether they had best all of them to show tbemselves in this design to the town of Mansoul? Secondly, Whether they had best to go and sit down against Mansoul, in their now ragged and beggarly guise? Thirdly, Whether they had best to show to Mansoul their in- tentions, and what design they came about; or whether to assault it with v/ords and Avays of deceit? Fourthly, Whether they had not best give outpi'ivate orders, to some of their companions, to take the advantage, if they see one or more of the principal townsmen, to shoot them; if there- by they shall judge their cause and design will the better be promoted? It was answered, to the first of these proposals, in the nega- tive; to wit, that it would not be best that all should show them- selves before the town, because the appearance of many of them might alarm and frighten the toAvn; whereas a few, or but one of them, was not so likely to do it. And to cause this advice to Tx- J J take place, it w^as added further, that if Mansoul , . I • "^^^s frighted, or did take the alarm, it is impos- ~ T h' ) hf ^^^^^5 ^^'^ DJabolus (for he spoke now,) that we ' . " should take the town; for that none can enter it * It is supposed that the fall of angels took place after the creation of man, ai^ tlurefoi-e it seems probable that the angels who fell, as well as those who continued in their integrity, were witnesses of the glory of God in the forma- tion of man. This is thought to be the meaning of Job xxxviii. 7. "the morning stars sang together, and all the sons of God shouted for joy ;" — tlie angels rejoiced at tlie founding of the earth, extolling the divine glory of ita Maker. 20 THE HOLY WAR. without its own consent.* Let therefore but a few, or but one, assault Mansoul, and, in my opinion, said Diabolus, let me be he. Wherefore to this they all agreed: and then to the se- cond proposal they came, namely, H. Whether they had best to go and sit down before Mansoul in their now ragged and beggarly guise? To which it was answered also in the negative. By no means; and that because, though the town of JMansoul had been made to know, and to have to do with, before now, things that are in- visible; they never did as yet see any of their fellow-creatures aj . in so bad and rascally a condition as they: and this was the advice of the fierce Alecto. Then Jibnll nn ^^'*^ Apollyon, the advice is pertinent; for even " ' one of us appearing to them as we are now, must needs both beget and multiply such thoughts in them, as will both put them into a consternation of spirit, and necessitate them to put themselves upon their guard: and if so, said he, then, as Diabolus said but now, it is in vain for us to think of taking the 7? /- A A' ^°"''^' Then said that mighty giant Beelzebub, The . .' advice that is already given is safe; for though the men of Mansoul have seen such things as we once were, yet hitherto they did never behold such things as we now are. And it is best, in my opinion, to come upon them in such a guise as is common to, and most familiar among them. To tliis when they had consented; the next thing to be considered, was, in what shape, hue, or guise, Diabolus had best to show .. ^ himself, when he went about to make Mansoul y^ ■J J . " J his own. Then one said one thing, and another ^y ' . '. the contrary. At lastLucifert answered, that, in ^w ^y"*/ A * '^'^ opinion, it Avas best that his lordship should PP '^ assume the body of one of those creatures that they of the town had dominion over: for, quoth he, those are not only familiar to them, but, being under them, • The will of man, in his orig'inai state, was certaiixly free, which is thus expressed by Milton : God made thee perfect, not immutable ; And good he made thee ; but to persevere He Itft it in thy power ; ordained thy will By nature free Paradise Lost. t These names are well chosen : Apollyon signifies the Destroyer : B zebub, the Lord of Flies, an idol of the heathen, and a name used by the Je for the prince of devils : Lucifer, the Morning Star, another name of a fallen angel : Legion, a name assumed by the Demoniac, (Mark v. 9. 15;;— a battal- ion of iiie Roman army, consisting of 4000 or 5000 men, Alecto, a feigned being among the heathen, one of the Furies ; described by their poets as having her head covered with snakes, and breathing vengeance: Tisiphone, another «f the Furies. BY JOHN BUNYAN. they will never imagine that any attempt should by them he made upon the town; and, to blind all, let him assume the body of one of those beasts that Mansoul deems to be wiser than any of tlie rest. Gen. iii. 1. Rev. xx. 1, 2. This advice was applauded of all; so it was determined that the giant Diabolus shourd as- sume the dragon; for that he was, in those days, as familiar with the town of Mansoul, as now is the bird Avith the boy; for no- thing that was in its primitive state was at all amazing to them. They then proceeded to the third thing, which was, III. Whether they had best show their inclinations, or the design of their coming to Mansoul, or no? This also was answered in the negative, because of the weight that was in their former reasons, to wit, for that Mansoul were a strong people, a strong people in a strong town, whose wall and gates were impregnable (to say nothing of their castles,) nor can they by any means be won but by their own consent. Be- sides, said Legion, (for he gave answer to this,) a discovery of our intentions may make them send to their King for aid; and if that be done, I know what time of the day it Avill be with us: there- fore let us assault them in all pretended fairness, covering our _ . - . intentions with all manner of lies, flatteries, de- -Legion advi- Yxxsne words: feigning things that will never be, ses dlssimula- , f. and promising that to them which they shall ne- tion and crajt. ^^^ g^^. ^^^j^ j^ ^^^^ ^^^^ ^^ ^^.^ Mansoul, and to make them willingly open their gates to us; yea, and desire us also to come in to them. And the reason Avhy I think that this pi^oject will do, is, be- cause the people of Mansoul are now every one simple and in- nocent: all honest and true: nor do they as yet know what it is to be assaulted with fraud, guile, and hypocrisy. They are strangers to lying and dissembling lips; wherefore we cannot, if thus we be disguised, by them at all be discerned; our lies shall go for true sayings, and our dissimulation for upright dealings. What we promise them, they will in that believe us; especially if in all our lies and feigned words we pretend great love to them, and that our design is only their advantage and hon- our. Now there was not one bit of a reply against this, for it went as current down as doth the water down a deep descent; wherefore they go to consider of the last proposal, which was, IV. AVhether they had not best to give out orders to some of their company, to shoot some one or more of the principal of the townsmen; if they judge that their cause might be promoted thereby? This was carried in the affirmative; and the man that was de- 28 THE HOLY WA.R. Of Cabtain ^'S"^*^ ^X ^'"^ stratagem, to be destroyed, was one Resistanr ^^^ Resistance, otherwise called Captain Resistance, and a great man in Mansoul this Captain Resistance was; and a man that the giant Diabolus, and his band, more feared, than they feared the whole town of Mansoul besides. Now who should be the actor to do the murder; that was the next: and they appointed one Tisiphone, a fury of the lake, to do it. Thus they having ended the council of war, rose up, and as- rpj , Iff saved to do as they had determined:* they march- thdr council, ff towards Mansoul, but all in a manner invisi- ble, save only one; nor did he approach the town in his own likeness, but under the shape and in the body of the dragon. So they drew up, and sat down before E&r-gate; for that was 7-i. , , the place of hearing for all without the town, , as hye-gate was the place of perception, bo, as ,, . " I said, he came up with his train to the gate, and the toivn. i ■ , , • , i r /-. . • t» • . '.i • laid his ambuscade for Captain Resistance, within bowshot of the town. This done, the giant ascended up close to the gate, and called to the town of Mansoul for audience. Nor took he any with him but one Illpause, who was his orator in all difficult matters. Now, as I said, he being come up to the gate (as the manner of those times was,) sounded his trumpet rpj J 1 f for audience; at which the chief of the town of ,^ , J Mansoul, such as my Lord Innocent, my Lord f, J Will-be-\vill,T my Lord-mayor, Mr Recorder, I ^ ' and Captain Resistance, came down to the wall, to see who was there, and what was the matter. And my Lord VVill-be-will, when he looked over, and saw who stood at the * The enemies of our souls are, in this council, represented as full of all subtlety, agreeably to the scripture account ; for Satan is called " the Deceiver, wlio dfceiveth the whole world ;" believers are said to be acquainted with his " devices," and are exhorted to " watch and pray, lest they enter into temp- tation." It was justly observed, " that none could enter the soul without its own consent." Satan may tempt, but cannot force the soul to sin: but "every man is tempted, when he is drawn away of his own lust, and enticed," .lames i. 4. We are therefore commanded to resist the devil, that he may fly from us. To destroy this necessary resistance, therefore, must be a great point with the enemy. + My Lord Will-he-WiU sig^iifies that power of the mind called the will, by which we determine for or against an action. X The Recorder is Conscience. By this faculty we judge of an action as good or bad, according to the light we enjoy, whether of the law of nature only, or of the written law, Rom. ii. 15. Conscience records our actions ; and in the great day of judgment, the book of conscience is one of those which ihall be ojiened. BY JOHN BUNYAN. 2d gate, demanded what he was, and v/herefore he was come, and why he roused the town of Mansoul with so unusual a sound .' Diabolus then, as if he had been a lamb, began his oration, ^. , , , and said, " Gentlemen of the famous town of JUiaooms s ^r ^ t • n ^ -, Mansoul, I am, as you may perceive, no far dwell- er from you, but neai*, and one that is bound by the King to do you homage, and what service I can; wherefore, that I may be faithful to myself and to you, I have somewhat of concern to impart unto you; -wherefore grant me your audience, and hear me patiently. And, first, I will assure you, it is not myself but you, not mine but your advantage, that I seek by what I now do; as will full well be made manifest, by that I hav^^i opened my mind to you. For, Gentlemen, I am (to tell you the truth) come to show you how you may obtain great and ample deliverance from a bondage that unawares to yourselves you are captivated and enslaved under." At this the town of Mansoul nr 7 began to prick up its ears. "And what is it, pray? enaTd ^^^^^ '^ '^•" ^^°"S^'^ ^^^y- ^"'^ ^^ ^^^^' "^ ^^^^ •^ ^^ ' something to say to you concerning your King, con- cerning his law, and also touching yourselves. Touchi-ng your King, I know he is great and potent; but yet, all that he hag said Biabolus^s ^^.7°^ *s neither true, nor yet for your advantage. , .7 . , T^ 1. it is not true; for that wherewith he hath hith- suotlety maae ^ , i ,, , , , ribofUes erto awed you, shall not come to pass, though P *^ * you do the thing he hath forbidden. But if there was danger, what a slavery it is to live always in fear of the greatest of punishments, for doing so small and trivial a thing as eating a little fruit is! 2. Torching his laws, this I say, further, they are both unreasonable, intricate, and intolerable. Unreasonable, as was hinted before, for that the punishment is not proportioned to the cfFence: there is a gi'eat difference and disproportion betwixt the life, and an apple; yet the one must go for the other, by the law of your Shaddai. But it is also intricate, in that he saith, first you may eat of all: and yet, after forbids the eating of one. And then, in the last place, it must False reasoning ^^^^^ ^^ intolerable; forasmuch as that fruit, bv Diabolus ^ '^^^^^ you are forbidden to eat of (if you are y ' forbidden any,) is that, and that alone, which is able by your eating, to minister you a good, as yet unknown by you. This is manifest by the very name of the tree, it is called The Tree of Knowledge of Good and Evil: and have you that knowledge as yet? No, no; nor can you conceive how good, how pleasant, and how much to be desired to make one wise, it is, so long as you stand by your King's commandment. 84 THE HOLY WAR. Why should you be holden in ignorance and blindness! Why should you not be enlarged in knowledge and understanding? And now, O ye inhabitants of the famous town of Mansoul, to Jle holds out a ^^^^^ "^'^^'^ particularly to yourselves, ye are false liberty. ^^^ ^ ^^'^^ people: ye are kept both in bondage and slavery, and that by a grievous threat, no reason being annexed, but, so I will have it, so it shall be. And is it not grievous to think on, that the very thing you are forbidden to do, might you but do it, would yield you botli •wisdom and honour? for then your eyes will be opened, and you shall be as gods. Now, since this is thus, quoth he, can you be kept by any prince in more slavery, and in greater bondage than you are under this day? You are made underlings, and ai-e wrapt up in inconveniencies, as I have well made appear: for what bondage greater than to be kept in blindness! Will not reason tell you, that it is better to have eyes, than to be with- out them? and that to be at liberty, is better than to be shut in a dark and stinking cave."* And just now, while Diabolus "was speaking these words tc n^t.tr,i r» -t Mansoul, Tisiphone shot at Captain Resistance, L; apt am Resist' , u ^ , ., / j ^ i, ancp fla' where he stood on the gate, and mortally wounded hini in the head: so that he, to the amazement of the townsmen, ^d the encouragement of Diabolus, fell down dead quite over the -wall, t Now when Captain Resist- ance was dead (and he was the only man of war in the town,) poor Mansoul was wholly left naked of courage, nor had she now any heart to resist: but this was as the devil would have it. Then stood forth that He, Mr Ill-pause, that Diabolus brought with him, who was his orator, and he addressed himself to speak to the town of Mansoul: the tenour of whose speech here folloAvs: Ill-Pause. "Gentlemen," quoth he, " it is my master's ■nj jij . happiness, that he has this day a quiet and ,'. h 1 f ' teachable auditory; and it is hoped by us, that his speech to the toxvn of we shall pj:evail with you not to cast off good Ti'^'^' ' ?'■' advice: my master has a very great love for you; Jnansoul. i i^u i i, n i ^i ^ i and although he very well knows that he runs the hazard of the anger of King Shaddai, yet love to you will * This artful speech of Diabolus is founded upon the scriptural account of the first temptation, Gen. iii. 1—4, " and tl»e serpent said unto the woman, yea, hath God said, ye shall not eat," &c. In this passage the prohibition is represented as too strict, as intended to abridge their happniess, and that dis- obedience would be attended witli no danger, but rather with great advantage. The devil, the father of lies, finding this method so successful, still persists in it. God says— Sinner, thou Rhalt die ; Satan says— Thou shalt not die; which of these ought we to believe? t Resistance to the suggestions of Satan failed in our first mother. She parleyed with tlie iemj>lation wliich she ought to have resisted and rejected BY JOHN BUNYAN. 25 make him do more than that. Nor doth there need that a word more should be spoken to confirm for truth what he hath said; there is not a word but carries with itself evidence in its bowels; the very name of the tree may put an end to all contro- versy in this matter. I therefore at this time shall only add this advice to you, under and by the leave of my lord (and with that he made Diabolus a very low congee:) consider his words; look on the tree, and the promising fruit thereof; remember „ also, that yet youknow but little, and this is the . .• ^ ■'" way to know more: and if j'our reason be not con- tation. ■' , £-11 1 quered to accept of such good counsel, you are not the men I took you to be." But when the towns-folk saw that the tree Avas good for food, and that it was pleasant to the eye, and a tree to be desired to make one wise, they did as old Ill-pause advised, they took and did eat thereof. Now this I should have told you before, that even then, when this Ill-pause Ttr T .7 T "^^^s making this speech to the townsmen, my J}ly J^ora inno- ^^^^ Innocency (whether by a shot from the cency s death. ^^^^ ^^ ^^^ ^j^^^^ ^^, ^^^^ ^^^^ ^^^j^^ ^^^^ suddenly took him, or whether by the stinking breath of that treacherous villain old Ill-pause, for so I am most apt to think) sunk down in the place where he stood, nor could he be brought to life again.* Thus these two brave men died; brave men I call them, for they were the beauty and glory of Mansoul, so long as they lived therein: nor did there now remain any more a noble spirit in Mansoul; they all fell down and yielded obedience to Diabolus, and became his slaves and vassals, as you shall hear. Now these being dead, what do the rest of the townsfolk, but rpi . / ^s men thr.thad found a foci's paradise, they pre- Ihetownta- ^^^^^^^ ^^ ^^^^^ ^^3 hinted, fell to prove the ken by Uia- ^^^^^^ ^^ ^^^ giant's words: and first, they did as boius a7id his lYl-^^ViM^G had taught them, they looked, they bands. considered, they were taken with the forbidden with abhorrence, ^he. paused : and it was an ill-pause. There was no occa- sion to pause or ponder on what the Devil had said, for he had given the lie to the God of truth. Whatever contradicts the word of God should be in- stantly resisted as diabolical. • The very breath of temptation, received and entertained a single moment, destroyed primitive innocence. When the lies of Satan were admitted, un- belief entered and innocence died. " Thou shalt surely die," said Jehovah. In a spiritual sense, man did indeed die immediately. Ke died spiritually, he died to God. "Lust conceived, and brought forth sin, and sin when fin- ished, brought forth death," Jam. i. 5. By this one fatal act of disobedience, the whole world was ruined. " By one man sin entered into the woi-ld, and death by sin." "By one man's disobedience many were made sinners." "By the offence of one, judgment came upon all men to condemnation." Rom. V. 18, 19. c 86 THE HOLY WAR fruit, " they took thereof, and did eat;'*'* and having eaten, they became immediately drunken therewith; so they opened the gates, both Ear-gate and Eye-pite, and let in Diabolus with all his bands, quite forgetting their good Shaddai, his law, and the judgment that he had annexed with solemn threatening ta the breach thereof. CHAPTER II. Diabolus takes possession of the Castle. Mr Understanding, the Lord Mayor, is deposed, and a wall built before his house to darken it. Mr Con- science the Recorder is displaced. My Lord Will-be-will is appointed Gov- ernor. The image of Shaddai defaced. A new corporation chosen, and forts erected. DIABOLUS having now obtained entrance in at the gates of the town, marches up to the middle thereof, to make his con- quest as sure as he could; and finding, by this time, the affec- tions of the people warmly inclining to him, he, thinking it was best striking while the iron is hot, made this farther deceiv- abla speech unto them, sajing, "Alas, my poor Mansoul! 1 have done thee indeed this service, as to promote thee to honour, and to greaten thy liberty; but alas! alas! poor Mansoul, thou wantest now one to defend thee; for assure thyself, when Shad- dai shall hear what is done, he will come; for sorry wdl he be that thou hast broken his bonds, and cast his cords away from thee. What wilt thou do? Wilt thou, after enlargement, siif- fer thy privileges to be invaded and taken away? or what wilt thou resolve with thyself?" Then they all with one consent said to this bramble, " Do thou reign over us." So he accepted _ . , , . the motion, and became the king of the town of Biabolus IS i^jj^^so^i. This being done, the next thing was, entertained for ^^ ^. ^.^ j^. ^^ possession of the castle, and so of the their ki7ig. ^^,^^^^^ strength of the town. Wherefore into the castle he goes (it was that which Shaddai built in Mansoul, for his own delight and pleasure:) this was now become a den and hold for the giant Diabolus. Now having got possession of this stately palace or castle, what doth he, but He is possessed ^^^^ j^ ^ garrison for himself, and strengthens of the castle, ^^^^^ fortifies it with all sorts of provisions agains* » Milton finely represents the fatal act : " So saying, lur rash hand in evil hour " Forth reaching to the fruit, she pliick'd, she eat : *' Earth felt the wound, and nature from her seat, " Sighing through all her works, gave signs of woe " That all was lost."' Book IX. I. 780. BY JOHN BUNYAN. 27 ihc king Shaddai, or those that should endeavour andfortijiethtt ^^^^ regaining of it to him and his obedience for himself. ^ j,^ *^ ^ This done, but not thinking himself yet secure enough m the next place he betliinks himself of new modelling Diabohis neio- ^^^^ j.*^.^. ^^^^ go he does, setting up one and models the ^^j^^ ^own another at pleasure. Wherefore to-wn. \^ Lo,.(i Mayor, whose name was my Lord Un- derstanding, and Mr Recorder, whose name was Mr Conscience, tV.P<;p he nut oTit of place and power. Z for my Lord Mayor, though he was an understanding man / and one too that had complied with the rest of The lord May- ^^^ ^^^^^ ^f Mansoal in admitting the giant orpritoutof .^^^ ^^^ to^..^^ 2 Cor. x. 4, 5. yet Diabolus blace. thou-ht not fit to let him abide in his former lus- :h-Si=e^^|no:t^ palace by whch means the house, and the whole of his habita- ^on, was^made as dark as darkness itself: and thus, being alien- Ited from the light, he became as one that was born blind To Jhis house my lord was confined, as to a prison, nor n^'g^^t ^^ unon his parole, go further than within his own bounds And nSw had'he had L heart to do for Mansoul, what could he do for it, or wherein could he be profitable to her? So then so long U Mansoul was under the power and governmen of D^- bolus (and so long it was under him, as it -^.« "'^^fl^" /"J^^^ which was even until by a war it was rescued out ot his hand,) Totng my Lord Mayor' was rather an impediment in, than an advanta-e to, the famous town of Mansoul. t As for Mr Recorder, before the town was taken, he was a man weli read in the laws of his king, and also a The recorder ^^^ of courage and faithfulness to speak truth on pxit out of occasion; and he had a tongue as bravely place. ^^^i^ as he had an head filled with judgment. . The Heart of fallen xnan, ^^^I^^f^'^ X^^ l^^^^S^^ Satan; "the strong man armed 'keeK^th this pa^^^^^^^ ^^^ ^^^^^ the habitation of God. The poxvei^ 4 Sa^anTs become " the prince of this « strong holds" against ^oc^, 2 Coy .4 Satan ^s^ ^ .. world," and powerfully woiks il^^,*^^^'"'^ , " only obeyed by sinners umver- he is called "the god of '^^^..^^^^^^^^Sipped bv many If the' heathen. «ally, but, under various form., i^^J'J'^^'^^^IPJ^i, of-ii^ht, is now most miserably CO rupted unll takes his plrce. 28 THE HOLY WAR. Now this man, Diabolus could by no means abide, because, though he gave his consent to his coming into the town, yet he could not, by all wiles, trials, stratagems, and devices that he could use, make him his owp. True, he was much degenerat- ed from his former king, and also much pleased with the gi- ant's service, and many of his laws. But this would not do, forasmuch as he Avas not wholly his; he would now and then think upon Shaddai, and have a dread of his law upon He sometimes ^'™' ^^^ then he Avould speak against Diabolus sbeaks for the ^^^^ * voice as great as when a lion roareth: yea, first kino- ^^^ would also at certain times, when his fits •^ ^' were upon him (for you must know, that some- times he had terrible fits,) make the whole town of Mansoul shake with his voice; and therefore the new king of Mansoul could not abide him.* Diabolus therefore feared the Recorder more than any that was left alive in the town of Mansoul, because, as I said, his words did shake the whole town; they were like the rattling of thunder, and also like thunder-claps. Since therefore the gi- ant could not make him wholly his own, what doth he do, but studies all that he could to debauch the old gentleman, and by debauchery, to stupify his mind, and more harden his heart in the ways of vanity. And as he attempted so he accomplished rr . , , his design: he debauched the man, and by little T hpith ^"^ little so drew him into sin and wickedness, before *^^^ ^^ ^^^^ ^^ ^^^ ^°^ °"^^ debauched as at first, '' ' and so by consequence defiled, but Avas almost (at last, I say) past all conscience of sin. And this was the farthest Diabolus could go. Wherefore he bethinks himself of another project, and that Avas, to persuade the men of the tOAvn that Mr Recorder was mad, and so not to be regarded. And for this he urged his fits, and said, If he be himself, Avhy doth he not do thus ahvays? But, quoth he, all mad folks have their fits, and in them raA-ing language; so hath this old and rwiT ^ ^ 1 doating gentleman. Thus by one means or other The to-wn taken, *. °, , , ,, , . ,• w i . off from heed- ing him. he quickly got Mansoul to slight, neglect and despise Avhatever Mr Recorder could say. For, besides Avhat you have already heard, Dia- bolus had a Avay to make the old gentleman, Avlien he Avas mer- ry, unsay, and deny Avhat he in his fits had affirmed. And in- • The office and power of conscience (oi* the old recorder) is beautifully de- scribed. He will soini^times speak, yea, roar aloud, testifying; for God, and ag^aiiist sin. But it is the interest of Satan to debauch the conscience, and it possible, to silence it; and, if this cannot be done, to represent its faithful re- monstrances as tlie ravin|,s of madness. BY JOHN RUNYA^. 20 tlecil tins was the next way to make Inmself ridiculous, and to „ . cause that no man should resrard him. Also /low conscience , i r i »• i • ol 1 1 • v 4. , . ,. now he never spake freely for kms: Shaddai, but becomes so rial' , , ,,' , .-^ti-j u , .,, always by force and constramt. Besides, he culous as ivith j j carnal me7i it would at one time be hot against that, about which at another he would hold his peace, so uneven was he now in his doings. Sometimes he would be as if fast asleep, and again sometimes as dead, even then when the whole town of Mansoul was in her career after vanity, and in her dance after the giant's pipe. Wherefore sometimes, when Mansoirl did use to be frighted with the thundering voice of the Recorder that was, and when they did tell Diabolus of it, he would answer, that what the old gentleman said was neither out of love to him, nor pity to them, but of a foolish fondness that he had to be prating; and so Avould hush, still, and put all to quiet again. And that he might leave no argument unurged that might tend to make them secure, he said, and said it often. Oh Mansoul! consider, that notwith- „ . , standing the old gentleman's rage, and the rattle of ba muca . Yiis\\\^\\ and thundering woi-ds, you hear nothing ? erotic. of Shaddai himself, (when liar and deceiver, that he was, every outcry of Mr Recorder against the sin of Mansoul was the voice of God in him to them.) But he goes on, and says, you see that he values not the loss nor rebellion of the town of Mansoul; nor will he trouble himself with calling his town to a reckoning, for their giving themselves to me. He knows, that though you were his, now you are lawfully mine; so leaving us to one another, he hath now shaken his hands of us. Moreover, O Mansoul ! quoth he, consider how I have served you, even to the uttermost of my power; and that with the best that I have, could get, or procure for you in all the world: besides, I dare say, that the laws and customs that you now are under, and by which you do homage to me, do yield you more solace and content than did the paradise that at first you posses- ., /).. sed. Your liberty also, as yourselves do very c>aa7isjii - ^^^j^ know, has been greatly widened and en- larged by me; whereas 1 found you a penned up _, . people, I have not laid any restraint upon you: Conscience. ^,^^ ^^^^ ^^ j^^^^ statute, or judgment of mine to fright you; I call none of you to account for your doings, except the madman, you know who I mean: I have granted you to live, »ach n^sin like a prince in his own palace, even with as little control from me as I have from you. And thus would Diabolus hush up and quiet the town of C* 30 THE HOLY WAR. Men sometimes Mansoul when the Recorder that was, did at .,, times molest them; yea, and with such cursed ^j- • orations as these would set the whole town m a their conscience. . ^ -..1,1 , rage and tuiy against the old gentleman; yea, the rascally crew at some times would be for destroying him. They have often wished, in my hearing, that he had lived a thousand miles off from them; his company, his words, yea, the sight of him, and especially when they remembered how in old times he did use to threaten and condemn them (for all he was now so debauched,) did terrify and afllictthem sore.* But all their wishes were vain; for I don't know how, unless by the power of Shaddai, and his wisdom, he was preserved in being amongst them. Besides his house was as strong as a castle, and stood hard by a strong-hold of the town: moreover, jyj.i .7 . if at any time any of the crew or rabble attempted ( \ nff ' ^" make him away, he could pull up the sluices(a) ^ ■' *''' ■ and let in such floods as would drown all round about him. But to leave Mr Recorder, and to come to my Lord Will-be- rp, .jj will, another of the famous town of Mansoul. This Will-be-will was as high-born in Mansoul, and was as much, if not more, a freeholder, than many of them were: be- sides, if I remember my tale aright, he had some privileges peculiar to himself in the famous town of Mansoul. Now, together with these, he was a man of great strength, resolution, and courage, nor in his occasion could any turn him away. But I say, whether he was proud of his estate, privileges, strength or what (but sure it was through pride of something,) he scorns now to be a slave in Mansoul; and therefore resolves to bear office under Diabolus, that he might (such a one as he was) be a petty ruler and governor in Mansoul; and (headstrong man that he was) thus he began betimes; for this man, when Diabolus did make his oration at Ear-gate, was one of the first that was for consenting to his words, and for accepting of his counsel as wholesome, and that was for opening the gate and letting him into the town: wherefore Diabolus had a kindness for him, and for that reason designed him for a place; and perceiving the valour and stoutness of the man, he coveted to have him for one • Conscience, in natural men, is very unequal and irregular in his opposition to sin ; yet, by fits and starts he will cry out, ami so frighten the sinner, that he wishes him "a tliousand miles off," so as to give him no disturbance, or prevent his quiet enjoyment of that liberty to sin, which Satan boasts he has framed to Mansoul. Nevertheless the power of conscience cannot be utterly estroyed. BY JOHN BUNYAN. 31 of his great ones, to act and do in matters of the highest con- cern.* So he sent for him, and talked with him of that secret mat- ter which lay in his breast; but there needed not much per- rr,j -77 ^ 7 suasion in the case; for as at first he was willing: The -will takes ,i , tx- , , , , , i i ^ • . ^, . * ., , r^. that Diabolus should be let intothe town, so place iiiider Di- , .,,. ^ ,. ^,' 17 now he was as willing to serve him there. When the tyrant, therefore, perceived the willingness of my lord to serve him, and that his mind stood bending that way, he forthwith made him captain of the castle, governor of the wall, and keeper of the gates of Mansoul: yea, there was a clause in his commission, that nothing without him should be done in all the town of Mansoul: so that now, next to Diabolus himself, who but my Lord Will-be-will in all the town of Mansoul! nor could any thing be now done, but at his will and pleasure, throughout the town of Mansoul, Rom. viii. 7. ,, , -~ , He had also one Mr Mind for his clerk; a man, JVLr Jyiind. mv ^ , i-i i,- 4. r u , ,, 7 7 to speak on, every way like his master; tor he lord's clerk. j 1 • 1 1 • • • i j • and his lord were in principle one, and m practice not far asunder, Eph. ii 2, 3, 4. And now was Man- soul brought under to purposes, and made to fulfil the lusts of the will, and of the mind.f But it will not be out of my thoughts, what a desperate one this Will-be-will was, when power was put into his hand. First, he flatly denied that he owed any suit or service to his former prince and liege lord. This done, in the next place he took an oath, swore fidelity to his great master Diabolus, and then being stated and settled in his place, office, advancement, and preferment, oh you cannot think, unless you had seen it, the strange work that this workman made in the town of Man- soul. First, He maligned Mr Recorder to death; he would neither rr,L 1 -11 endure to see him, nor hear the words of his 1 he carnal tviU ., , 1 1 u ^ i,- u u mouth, he would shut his eyes when he saw opposes con- ,. j^ i- .1 ^ , ^ • M him, and stop his ears when he heard him speak. Also he could not endure that so much as a fragment of the law of Shaddai should be any where seen * My Lord Will-he-7vilL — The authoi- represents the will as a lord, a person of great consequence in the town, and very justly, for the human will is that power of the soul whereby we enoose and determine. It is a governing facul- ty ; and there could be no sin, till the w ill consented to the temptation. In fallen man the will is not subject to the law of God, but obstinately opposed to it, and therefore a fit deputy for the de^il. t By the mind, the author probably designs the judgment, or that faculty by which we distinguish between good pnd evil, and we are assured by the acripcures that "the carnal mind is enmity against God." 32 THE HOLY WAt?. in the tOAvn. For example, his cicrk, Mr Mind, had sonte ohl rrnts, Ncheni. ix. '20, and torn parchments of the law of good Shaddai in his house: but -when Will-he-Mill saw them, he cast them behind his back. True, Mr Recorder had some of the laws in his study; but my lord could by no means come at them: he also thought and said, the windows of my old lord C ht-^'U iT^fiyor's house were always too light for the , ^ , , profit of the town of Mansoul. Thelisrhtofa loves a dark vn- ,, , ,■, ^ , -»- .i • , ,. candle he could not endure. JNow nothing •^ ■ at all pleased Will-be-M ill, but what pleased Diabolus his lord.* There was no other like him to trumpet about the streets the brave nature, the wise conduct and great glory of the king Diabolus. He would range throughout all the streets of Man- soul, to cry up his illustrious lord; and would make himself even as an abject, among the base and rascally crew, to cry up „ . . J his valiant prince. And I say, when and ^ ' wheresoever he found those vassals, he Avould even make himself as one of tliem. In all ill courses, he would act without bidding, and do mischief without commandment. The Lord Will-be-will also had a deputy under him, and his name was Mr Affection: one that Mas also greatl}' debauched in his principles, and answered thereto in his life, Rom. i. 25; he was only given to the flesh, and therefore they call him Vile- affection. Now there was he, and one Carnal-lust, the daughter of Mr Mind (like to like, quoth the devil to the collier,) that Q . J J fell in love and made a match, and were mar- * ,.., (. ried; and, as I take it, they had several children, tivsen Vile- a f- ^ J t>i i " *i j u * r ^ ^. , y. as Impudence, Black-mouth, and Hate-reproof. fection mid Car- r^, \, 1 1 i i, ii -j .i 11. i hese three Avere black boys; and besides these three, they had three daughters, as Scorn-truth, Slight-God, and the name of the youngest was Revenge; these were all married in the town, and also begot and yielded many bad brats, too many to be inserted. But to pass by this.f When the giant had thus ingarrisoned himself in tlie town of Mansoul, and had put down and set up whom bethought good, he betakes himself to defacing. Now there was in the market- place of Mansoul, and also upon the gates of the castle, an • Great is the avei-sion of the carnal mind and will to the Bible. Never was gi-eater huired to it discovered than in this day! Rut why do our infidels hate it? The true reason is, "-th.-y love darkness rather than lifjht, because their deeds are evil," John iii. 19. The little n'maiiiing ''ffht of conscience they cannot endure, becaiisi- it condemns their beloved carnality. t Thi^ aftectioiis follow tlie dictates of the will. The offspring of Vileaf- fection and Canial-lust are enmnerated: a an retched brood' BY JOHN BUNYAN. 33 image of the blessed king Shaddai; this image was so exactly engraven (and it was engraven in goUl) that it did the most resemble Shaddai himself, of any tiling that then was extant in the world. This he basely commanded to be defaced, h ri' ^"^ ^^ ^^^^ basely done by the hand of Mr No-truth. truth did. ^^^^ ^,^^ ^^g^ know, that as Diabolus had comman- ded, and that by the hand of Mr No-truth, the image of Shaddai was defaced? he likewise gave order that the same Mr No-truth should set up in its stead, the horrid and formidable image of Diabolus; to the great contempt of the former king, and deba- sing his town of Mansoul.* Moreover, Diabolus made havock of all remains of the laws and statutes of Shaddai, that could be found in •f " law-boo/cs ^^g ^^^^^ ^j. ]y,£jjnsoul; to wit, such as contained destroyed that ^^^^^^ doctrines or morals, with all civil and could dejoimd. ^^^^^^^^ documents: also relative severities he sought to extinguish. To be short, there was nothing of the remains of good in Mansoul, which he and Will-be-will sought not to destx'oy; for their design was, to turn Mansoul into abrute, and to make it like the sensual sow, by the hands of Mr No- truth, t When he had destroyed what law and good orders he could, then further to effect his design, namely to Tlie edicts oj alienate Mansoul from Shaddai her king, Diabolus set up. ^^ commands, and they set up his own vain edicts, statutes, and commandments in all places of resort or concourse in Mansoul, 1 John ii. 16, to wit, such as gave liberty *' to the lusts of the fiesh, the lusts of the eyes, and the pride of life, which are not of Shaddai, but of the world." He en- couraged, countenanced, and promoted lasciviousness and all ungodliness there. Yea, much more did Diabolus to encourage wickedness in the town of Mansoul; he promised them peace, content, joy and bliss, in doing his commands, and that they should never be called to an account for their not doing the con- trary. And let this serve to give a taste to them that love to hear of v'hat is done beyond their knowledge, afar off in other countrieo. • God made man in his own holy and beautiful image. Sin has miserably defaced this image of God in the soul, and substituted the horrid and deform ed image of the devil. O wliat a change! t Satan would obliterate all the commandments of God, prevent the prac- tice of all duty to him or to our neighbour, and make us merely carnal and brutish. Awfully hath he succeeded, so that man is become that motley monster, "half beast, half devil," as bishop Hall calls him; uniting in him- self the sensual appetites of the former, with the diabolical tempers of the latter. 34 THE HOLY WAR. Now Mansonl being wholly at his beck, and brought wholly fb his bow, notliing was heard or seen therein but that which tended to set up him. But now, he having disabled the Lord Mayor and Mr Recor- rm 7 der from bearins; anv office in Mansoul, and 1 hey have a new • .i .i ? ' , r i \ •. J , , seeing that the town, betore he came to it, lord mayor and * ^ • 1 r .• • .i ^ J was the most ancient ol corporations in the a new recorder. , , , ^ . .^ , ,. ; ^ . ^ . world; and tearing, it ne did not maintain greatness, they at any time should object that he had done them an injury; therefore, I say (that they might see that he did not intend to lessen their grandeur, or to take from them any of their advantageous things) he did chose for them a lord mayor and a recorder to himself; and such as contented them to the heart, and such also as pleased him wondrous well. The name of the mayor that was of Diabolus' making, was the Lord Lustings. A man that had neither eyes nor ears; all that he did, whether as a man or an officer, he did it naturally as doth the beast; and that which made him yet more ignoble, though not to Mansoul, yet to them that beheld, and were grieved for its ruin, was, that he could never favour good but evil.* The recorder was one whose name was Forget-good; and a rpj , very sorry fellow he was; he could remember , , nothing but mischief, and to do it with delight. He was naturally prone to do things that are hurtful; even hurtful to the town of Mansoul, and to all the dwellers there. These two, therefore, by their power and practice, examples, and smiles upon evil, did much more mis- chief, and settled the common people in hurtful ways; for who doth not perceive, that when those that sit aloft are vile and cor- rupt themselves, they corrupt the whole region and country where they are. t Besides these Diabolus made several burgesses and aldermen ir J ai J i'^ Mansoul; such as out of whom the town, Jle doth make , •,. i i • i . i *i m ^, , , when it needed, might cliuse them officers, them new alder- j • f 4^ i .i .u eovernors and mas-istrates; and these are the names of the chief of them: Mr Incredulity, Mr Haughty, Mr Swearing, Mr Whoring, Mr Ilardheart, Mr Pitiless, Mr Fury, Mr No-truth, Mr Stand-to-lies, Mr False- * Instead of the iindevstanding, which, before the revohition, gfoverned the town, Mr JAistiiigs is made lord mayor. This wreK-h " had neither eyes nor ears." So beastly are carnal lusts, that they pay no reg^ard to reason nor danper, but are hurried on by mere appetite to every fleshy indulgence. t The memory has suiFered much by tlie fall. It is wonderfully tenacious of evil, but is sure to forget every thing that is good. BY JOHN BUNYAN. 35 peace, Mr Drunkenness, Mr Cheating, Mr Atheism; thirteen in nil. Mr Incredulity is the eldest, and Mr Atheism the youngest of the company.* There was also an election of common-council-men, and others: as bailiffs, Serjeants, constables, &c. but all of them, like those afore-named, being either fathers, brothers, cousins, or nephews, to them, -whose names, for brevity-sake, I omit to mention. When the giant had thus far proceeded in his work, in the rr V -J J .1 .1 next place he betook him to build some strong He buildeth three , ,,..,* lu i -i**! *i * , ,. holds in the town; and he built three that seem- ^ ' ed to be impregnable. The first he called the hold of Defiance, because it was made to command the w hole town, and to keep it from the knowledge of its ancient king. The second he called Midnight hold, because itwa§ built on purpose to keep Mansoul from the true knowledge of itself. The third was called Sweet-sinhold, becaiise by that he fortified Mansoul against all desires of good. The first of these holds stood close by Eye-gate, that the light might as much as possible be dark- ened there. The second was built hard by the old castle, to the end that that might be made more blind, if possible. And the third stood in the market-place. He that Diabolus made governor over the first of these, was one Spite-God, a most blasphemous wretch. He came with the whole rabble of them that came against Mansoul at first, and was himself one of themselves. He that was made the govern- or of Midnight-hold was one Love-no-light, he was also one of them that came first against the town. And he that was made the governor of the hold called Sweet-sin-hold, was one whose name was Love-flesh; he was also a very lewd fellow, but not of that country from whence the others are bound. This fellow could find more sweetness when he was sucking a lust, than he did in the Paradise of God. And now Diabolus thought hiiAself safe; he had taken Man- soul; he had ingarrisoned himself therein; he had Diabolus has ^^^ ^^^^^ ^^^^ ^^^ oScers, and set up new ones; made his nest, j^^ j^^^^ defaced the image of Shaddai, and had set up his own; he had spoiled the old law-books, and had promot- ed his own vain lies; he had made him new magistrates, and set up new aldermen; he had built his new holds and had manned them for himself. And all this he did to make himself secure, * A fit set of wretches to govern under Ihabolus! It is well observed, that of there vile aldermen, IncreduUty (or unbelief) was the eldest, and Atheism, tlie youngest. Unbelief naturally ends in Atheism. • 36 THE HOLY WAR. in case the good Shaddai, or his Son should come to make an incursion upon him*. CHAPTER III. Information of the revolution carried to Shaddai. His great resentment on the occasion. His gracious iiin^ntions of restoring Mansoul. Some intima- tion of this published. Care of Diabolus to suppress tliis information. His stratagems to secm-e the possession of the town, and prevent its return to Shaddai. NOW you may well think, that, long before this time, word by some or other could not but be carried to the good king Shad- rp-^' . ; dai, how his Mansoul on the continent of Uni- . ^, ^ ^ /. verse was lost; and that the giant Diabolus, to the court, of c \ • • ^ ■, ^ i i • 1^7 111! once one ot his majesty's servants, had, ni re- ■what had hap- , ,,. • * ^i i • j ^^ c c J • T*- bellion aoamst the kinir, made sure tnereoi tor pened m Man- ,. ir i ..u * * ^ J himselt, and that to a very circumstance. At first. How Diabolus came upon Mansoul, (they being a simple people and innocent) with craft, subtlety, lies, and guile: Item, That he had treacherously slain tlieir right noble and valiant captain, the Captain Resistance, as he stood upon the gate with the rest of the townsmen: Item, How my brave Lord Innocent fell down dead (with grief, some sa}'; or with being poisoned with the stinking breath of one Ill-pause, as say others) at the hearing of his just lord and rightful prince Shaddai so abused by the mouth of so filthy a Diabolonian as that varlet Ill-pause was. The messenger further told, that af- ter this Ill-pause had made a short oration to the townsmen, in behalf of Diabolus his master, the simple town, believing to be true what was said, with one consent did open Ear-gate, the chief gate of the corporation, and did let him with his crew in- to the possession of the famous town of Mansoul. He further showed how Diabolus had served the Loi-d-mayor and Mr Re- corder, to wit, that he had put them from all place of power and trust. Item, He showed also, that my Lord Will-be-will was turned a very rebel and runnagate, and that so was one Mr Mind, his clerk; and that they two did range and revel it all the town over, and teach the wicked ones their ways. He said moreover, tliat this Will-be-will was put into great trust, and particularly that Diabolus had put into Will-be-will's hand all • The revohition is completed. The understanding is darkened; the con science debauched; the will perverted; the image of God defaced; the law of God suppressed; and beastly lusts triumphant. While the proud sinner defies God, loves midnight darkness, and wallows in sin. What an awful but accu- rate picture of apostate man' God be merciful to us sinnersi BY JOHN BUNYAN. 37 the sli-ong places in Mansoul; and that Mr Affection was made my Lord Will-be-will's deputy, in his most rebellious affairs. Yea, said the messenger, this monster, Lord Will-l)e-\vill, has openly disavowed the King Shaddai, and hath given liis faith and plighted troth to Diabolus. Also, said the messenger, besides this, the new king, or ra- ther rebellious tyrant, over the once famous, hut now perishing J\'eio officers ^^^^ ^^ Mansoul, has set up a lord- mayor and re- appointed by ^'^''^^^ ^^ ^'^ °^^"- ^^r mayor he has set up one Diabolus MrLustings; and, for recorder, Mr Forget-good; two of the vilest of all the town of Mansoul. This faithful messenger also proceeded, and told what a sort of new burgesses Diabolus had made; also that he had built several 'Strong forts, towers, and strong-holds in Mansoul. He told too, the which I had almost forgot, how Diabolus had put the town of Mansoul into arms, the better to capacitate them, on his behalf, to make resistance against Shaddai their king, should he come to reduce them to their former obedience. Now the tidings-teller did not deliver his relation of things Grief at court to ^^ P^'i^^^e, but in open court, the king and his hear the tidings. f°"' J^^f lo^'^s, chief captains, and nobles, •^ bemg all there present to hear. But by that they had heard the whole of tlie story, it would have amazed one to have seen, had he been there to behold it, what sorrow and grief, and compunction of spirit, there was among all sorts, to think that the famous Mansoul was now taken 5 only the king and his son foresaw all this long before, yea, and sufficiently provided for the relief of Mansoul, though they told not every body thereof. Yet because they too would have a share in con- doling the misery of Mansoul, therefore they also did, and that at a rate of the highest degree, bewail the losing of Mansoul. The king said plainly, that, "it grieved him at the heart," Gen. vi. 5, 6. and you may be sure that his son was not a whit be- hind him. Thus they gave conviction to all about them, that they had love and compassion for the famous town of Mansoul.* * " Known unto God are all things, from the beginning of the world." The fall was foreseen from all eternity. God, in his unsearchable wisdom per- muted It, and provided, in the covenant of grace, for the restoration of his people. :. Nothing can more awfully bespeak the extreme sinfulness and misery of man, than the words here referred to—" It repented the Lord that he had made man on the eaith, and ii grieved him at his heart." Goo's resentment agamst sm in here expressed after the manner of men, and must not be un- derstood as implying uneasiness or change of mind in Jehovah, but his just displeasure against sin and sinners, as odious to his holiness, and obnoxious to his justice. He is spoken of as grieved, like a person whose kindness has been abused—who has fostered a snake in his bosom which now hisses and D 39 THE HOLY WAR. Well, when the king and his son were retired into the -privy chamber, they there ap:ain consulted about what they had de- signed before, to wit, That as Mansoul should in time be suf- 7Vie secrets of^^^^^^ ''^ ^'^ ^°^^' ^° '"^^ certainly it should berecov- his bir'bo^p ^^'^'^ again. Recovered, I say, in such a way, as ■^ '•' ' that both the king and his son would get them- selves eternal fame and glory thereby. Wherefore, after this rnj,^ c„^.rr^ 7 consultation, the son of Shaddai (a sweet and Ihe iionof God. , , .1 ^ i i t •^ comely person, and one that had always great afFectioTi for those tliat were in affliction, but one that had mor- tal enmity in his heart against Diabolus, because he was de- signed for it, and because he sought his crown and dignity, Isaiah, xlix. 5. 1 Tim, i. 15. Hos. xiii. 14;) this sou of Shad- dai, I say, having striken hand with his father, and promised . that he would be his servant to recover Mansoul again, stood by his resolution, nor would he repent of the same. The pur- a F ^ , . port of which agreement was this, to wit. That t ^ c fit a certain time, prefixed by both, the king's set on foot for i 1 1 ^ 1 • • f .u . f the t f ^*^" should take a journey into the country of j.^ f"^ Universe, and there in a way of justice and equity, by making amends for the follies of Mansoul, ne should lay the foundation of her perfect- deliver- ance from Diabolus, and from his tyranny.* Moreover, Immanuel resolved to make, at a time convenient, ( \ n ft, TT a war upon the giant Diabolus, (a) even while ; fiu f ' he was possessed of the town of Mansoul; and "^ " that he would fairly, by strength of hand, drive him out of his hold, his nest, and take it to himself, to be his habitation-. This Leing now resolved upon, order was given to the Lord rp, „ J Chief Secretary, to draw up a fair record of what „ •// , was determined, and to cause that it should be pub- " ' lished in all the corners of the kingdom of Universe. A short breviat of the contents thereof, you may, if you please, take here as follows: 'Let all men know, who are concerned, than the son of 1-hp rnr^f^y^t, Shaddai, the great king, is engaged by co- inecomems. ^,^^^^ ^^ ^ns father, ta bring his Mansoul to stin^. " Doth Gvd thus hate sin, and shall not we hate it? Hath our sin grieved him to tlw? heart, and shall not we be gn^ieved to the heart for it? O tliat this consideration may liumble and sliame us, and that we may look u\mn him whom we have thus grieved and mourn." Henry. * How astonishing;; is the divine benij^nity! and who can express it «o well as ill the words uf linmanutl himself (John iii. ft.) God SO loved the world— solovidl Mow ii.ucli ho loved, no tongue can ttll, no heart conceive. It 13 love uiuoiiglit, uiiparalli-kd, fixe, and cverlastiiiijl BY JOHN BUNYAN. S9 him aEcain; yea, and to put Mansoul too, through his love, into a far better and more happy condition than it was in be- fore it was taken by Uiabolus. '* These papers, therefore, were published in several places, to the no little molestation of the tyrant Diabolus; for now, thought he, I shall be molested, and my habitation will be taken from me. But when this matter, I mean this purpose of the king an(> his son, did at first take air at court, who can tell how the high lords, chief captains and noble princes tliat were there, were taken with the business ! First, Tliey whispered to one another, (a) and after / \ a-mo'nfr ^^^t it began to ring throughout the king's palace, all the ano-els "^^ondering at the glorious design that between the ' ^ ' king and his son was on foot for the miserable town of Mansoul: yea, the courtiers could scarcely do any thing, either for the king, or kingdom, but they would mix, with the doing thereof, a noise of the love of the king and his son, that they had for the town of Mansoul. f Nor could these lords, high captains, and princes, be content to keep this news at court; yea, before the records thereof were perfected, themselves came down and told it in Universe. At last it came to the ears, as I said, of Diabolus, to his no Diabolus ber ^'^^^^ discontent; for you must think it would per- plexed at the Pj^^, ^Jm to hear of such a design against him. ^ Well, but alter a tew casts in his mind, he con- cluded upon these four things: First, That this news, these good tidings (if possible) should be kept from the ears of the town of Mansoul; for, said he, if they should once rr ; T come to the knowledge that Shaddai, their former ed on several ^^°^' and Immanuel his son, are contriving good , . ^ for the town of Mansoul, what can be expected by •^ ■ me, but that Mansoul will revolt from under my hand and government, and return again to him.:}: Now to accomplish this his design, he renews his flattery with * Early intimation was g^iven to a lost world of God's gracious design in favour of rebel man: and the Lord designing to make the Scriptures, which are inspired by the Holy Spirit (the Secretary) the instrument in his hands for his recovery, was pleased to publish in them his benevolent purpose. t Angels desire to pry into the wonders of redemption. They would bf astonished at the discovery; as, long after they proved themselves to be, by the chorus they sang at our Saviour's birth— "Glory to God in the highest! on earth, peace! good-will towards men!" These benevolent spirits were also sometimes the messengers of evangelical tidings to the fathers previous to the incarnation of Immanuel. J It is the interest of hell to keep men in ignorance of the gospel, the pro- per teodency of which is to induce siiujers to return to God, 2 Cor. iv. 4. 40 THE HOLY WAR. my Lord Will-be-will, and also gives him strict charge and p. . , . command, that he should keep Avatch by day , . ', and nisjht at all the gates oftlie town, especially keep the news ^ » . ^ ^ r t i 1- i • fromMansouL ^ar-ga e and Eye-gate: for I hear ot a design *' t^uoth he, a design to make us all traitors, and that Mansoul must be reduced to its first bondage again. I hope they are but flying stories, quoth he; however, let no such news by any means be let into jNIansouI, lest the people be dejected thereat:! think, my lord> it can be no welcome news to you, I m, •„ am sure it is none to me: and I think, that at The IV? U en- ^.- ^- •. i i i i n • i , , . this time It should be all our wisdom and care ^, ■^ .^j to nip the head of all such rumors as shall tend p '^fJj \j.i f to trouble our people; wherefore I desire, my . , "^ lord, that you will in this matter do as I say. . r ^^ 7 Let there be strons: guards daily kept at every out of Mansoul. ^ r.u ^ cf i i • r '' gate of the town. Stop also and examine from whence such come, whom you perceive do come from far hither to trade: nor let them by any means be admitted into Mansoul, unless you shall plainly perceive that they are favorers of our excellent government. I command, moreover, said Uiabolus, „,, , that there be spies continually walking up and fi 1 f f down the town of Mansoul; and let them have •f^ ^ power to suppress and destroy any that they shall tVOVCi^ CIVS to y J y , , see plotting against us, or that shall prate of what ^^ ' by Shaddai and Immanuel is intended. This therefore was accordingly done; my Lord Will-be-will hearkened to his lord and master, went willingly after his com- mandment, and with all the diligence he could, kept any that would from going out abroad, or that sought to bring these tidings to Mansoul, from coming into the town. Secondly, This done, in the next place Diabolu'', that he might fl ^, make Mansoul as sure as he could, fi-ames and A new oath . .i i u -ui ^ . . . imposes a new oath and horrible covenant upon tmposed. tu * 5 r n ^ the town's folk: To wit, That they should never desert him, nor his govern- ment, nor yet betray him, nor seek to alter his laws: but that they should own, confess, stand by, and acknowledge him for their rightful king, in defiance of any that do, or hereafter shall, by any pretence, law, or title whatsoever, lay claim to the town of Mansoul, Isa. xxviii. 15. thinking belike that Shaddai had not power to absolve them from this covenant with death, and rr,, ^ T ^7 airreement with hell. Nor did the silly Mansoul Theu take the ". , , i ^ n . ., • ^ \ r stick or boggle at all at this most monstrous en- gagement, but, as if it had been a sprat in the BY JOHN BUNYAN. 41 mouth of a whale, they swallowed it without any chewing. Were they trouhled at it ? Nay, they rather bragged and boasted of their so brave fidelity to the tyrant their pretended king; swearing that they would never be changelings, nor forsake their old lord for a new. * Thus did Diabelus tie poor Mansoul fast; but jealousy that never thinks itself strong enough, put him, in the next place, upon another exploit, which was, yet more, if possible, to de- bauch this town of Mansoul; wherefore he caused, by the hand of one Mr Filth, anodious, nasty, lascivious piece of beast- liness (a) to be drawn up in writing, and set upon the gates: / N Q,. whereby he granted and gave licence to all his athfntf' Ih true ail d trusty sons in Mansoul, to do wTiat- hJlt il^J soever tlieir lustful appetites prompted them. to thy ballads and f ^',^"^ ^^^^ '^^ "^^". ''^l f° let, hinder, or con- romances full of "^^^ tliem, upon pam of incurring the displea- ., , , '' -' sure oi their prince. + ribaldry. ^.^ .u- u iir ^i. ^ Now this he did for these reasons: 1. That the town of Mansoul might be yet made weaker and ■p f h' "leaker, and so more unable, should tidings , . . J come that their redemption was designed, to ^ ' believe, hope, or consent to the truth thereof: for reason says, ' the bigger the sinner, the less ground or hope of mercy. ' 2. The second reason was. If perhaps Immanuel, the son of Shaddai their king, by seeing the horrible and profane doings of the town of Mansoul, might repent, though entered into a cove- nant of redeeming them, of pursuing that covenant of their re- demption; for he knew that Shaddai was holy, and that his son Immanuel was holy; yea, he knew it by woful experience: for, for the iniquity and sin of Diabolus was he cast from the highest orbs. Wherefore what more rational than for him to conclude, that thus for sin it might fare with Mansoul? But fearing lest also this knot should break, he bethinks himself of another, to wit: * Hardened sinnei-s seem to be sworn vassals of Satan, and sometimes make desperate resolutions never to be religious. "We have made a cove nant with death, and with hell are we at agreement." Isa. xxviii. 15. Such men " gloiy in their shame," and detei-mine to be more and more vile. ■f The margin informs us what this means. "Would to God there we-e noneof these infidel and obscene pamphlets, pictures and songs among us! But they abound; are circulated with diligence, introduced into schooh among boys and girls, read with avidity, and they produce the damnable effects which the Devil designs; for the deeper the heart is immersed in sen- suality, the less regard will be paid to God and religion; and not unftequent- ly, a secret despair possesses the sinner, that there '-.» no hope for Lim^ aud llierefore he may as well enjoy the full pleasure* p vnii_ mv ATnn<>r>nL snri^ tlmf vnn Of armour. wherefore be you, my Mansoul, sure that you make use of this. AVhat! cry for quarter? Never do that, if you would be mine: 1 know you stout men; and am sure that I have clad you with that which is armour proof; where- fore to cry to Shaddai for mercy, let that be far from you. Besides all this, I have a maul, firebrands, arrows, and death, all good hand-weapons, and such as will do execution.* After he had thus furnished his men with armour and arms, • This is a just descrijUion of that "whole armour" of the devil, with which mistaken sinners defViid themsdves against God. Presumption — hardness of heart — a blasphemous tonjjue — unbelief, and a prayerless sj)irit. This is Satan's armour; tue very reverse of that which God has provided for christian soldiers. BY JOHN BUNYAN. 45 H backs all ^^ addressed himself to them in such like words Jth a speech ^' ^P^- ^"'^7^^^' *1^^^^^ ^^' '^'f ^ ^"^ ^^^^^ unto them. ^'»""^^ *^i"S= ^"'l that you have taken an oath, and entered into covenant, to be true to me and to my cause: I say, remember this, and show yourselves stout and valiant men of Mansoul. Remember also the kindness that I have always showed to you, and that without your petition. I have granted to you external things; wherefore the privileges, grants, immunities, profits, and honours, wherewith 1 have en- dowed you, do call forth at your hands returns of loyalty, my lion-like men of Mansoul: and what so fit a time to show it, as ■when others shall seek to take my dominion over you into their own hands? One word more, and I have done: Can we but stand, and overcome this one shock or brunt, I doubt not but in a little time all the world will be ours; and when that day comes, my true hearts, I will make you kings, princes, and captains, and what brave days shall we have then.* Diabolus having thus armed and fore-armed his servants and vassals in Mansoul, against their goood and lawful king Shaddai, in the next place he doubleth his guards at the gates of the town, Theii of Man- ^"^^ betakes himself to the castle, which was soulshoiv their ^^^ strong hold: his vassals also, to show their loyalty to the ^'^^^\ ^""^ supposed (but ignoble) gallantry, eiant exercise them in their arms every day, and * teach one another feats of war, they also defied their enemies, and sung up the praises of their tyrant; they threatened also Avhat men they would be, if ever things should rise so high as a war between Shaddai and their king. CHAPTER IV. Shaddai sends an army of forty thousand men to reduce Mansoul, under the command of Boanerges, Conviction, Judgment, and Execution. The cap- tains address themselves the inhabitants in speeches of g'reat energy, but to little purpose, Diabolus, Incredulity, Ill-pause and others interposing to pre- vent submission. Prejudice defends Ear-gate with a guard of sixty deaf men. Now all this time the good king, the king Shaddai, was pre- paring to send an army to recover the town of Mansoul again • Thus Satan deceiveth (almost) the whole world, promising liberty and pleasure, while slavei-y and destruction are his only aim. Xor need we won- der that he thus assaults us, for he had the presumption to attack our divine Lord in the' same manner; "All these things," said he,— all the glories and pleasures of the world—" will I give thee if thou wilt fall down and woi-ship me." None of these things, however, seduced his heai-t; but alas! bow small a portiou of wordly good is generally enough to allure us! 46 THE HOLY WAR. from under the tyranny of their pretended king Diabolus; but cj. ; 7 • A J. ''G tlioufjht crood, at the first, not to send them ., ,, I r by the hand and conduct of brave Immanuel his reth an army o i . i i i i r r i • /• ., aon, but under trie liana 01 some 01 his servants, for the recovery ^ i. ^ ■, ,, ., . r nr i /• 71^ 7 to see first by tliem the temper oi iNIansoui, of JMansoiil. i i .i ^ .i ^^ iii . .i *' and whether by them they would be won to tlie obedience of their king. The army consisted of above forty thousand, all true men; for they came from the king's own court, and Mere those of his own choosing. They came up to IMansoul under the conduct of four stout generals, each man being captain often thousand men; and these are their names, and their ensigns. The name of the first was Th ftf ' ' C^Pt^*"^ Boanerges; the name of the second was " Captain Conviction; the name of the third, Cap- tain Judgment; and the name of the fourth Mas Captain Execution. These were the captains that Shaddai sent to regain Mansoul. These four captains (as was said) the king thought fit in the first place to send to !NIansoul, to make an attempt upon it; for indeed generally, in all his wars, he did use to place these four captains in the van, for they were very stout and rough-hewn men, Psal. Ix. 4. men that were fit to break the ice, and to make their way by dint of sword, and their men \vere like them- selves. To each of these captains the king gave a banner, that it might rp, , . . be displayed, because of the goodness of his *!. i ^ cause, and because of the right that he had to them a baiiner. ,t i Mansoul. First, To Captain Boanerges, for he was the chief, to him, I say, were given ten thousand men: his ensign was Mr Thunder : he bore the black colours, and his scutcheon was the three burning thunderbolts, Mark iii. 17. The second captain was Captain Conviction; to him were given ten thousand men: his ensign's name was Mr Sorrow; he did bear the pale colours, and his scutcheon was the book of the law wide open, from whence issued aflame of fire, Deut. xxxiii. 2. The third captain was Captain Judgment; to him were given ten thousand men: his ensign's name was Mr Terror; he bare the red colours, and his scutcheon was a burning fiery furnace, Matt. xiii. 40, 41. The fourth captain was Captain Execution; to him were given ten thousand men: his ensign was one Mr Justice; he also bare the red colours, and his scutcheon was a fruitless tree, with an «xe lying at the root thereof, Matt. iii. 10. BY JOHN BUNYAN. 47 ftM 1^ ^ These four captains, as I said, had etert one The four cap- ^^i i i- ^ * *i i - 1 .. '' i ^ J of them under his command ten thousand men, tains have each ,, r. i c i i-^ ^ *i v i ^ ^ I . , , all of good fidelity to the King, and stout at , _,, their mihtarv actions.* men under them. -.ir i, ,, ' . • i *u • r *t • Well, the captains and their forces, their men and under officers, being had upon a day by Shaddai into the field, and there called over by their names, were then and there put into such harness as became their degree, and that service that now they were going about for their king. Now when the king had mustered his forces (for it was he that mustered the host to the battle,) he gave unto the captains their several commissions, with charge and commandment, in the audience of all the soldiers, that they should take heed faithfully and courageously to do and execute the same. Their commissions were, for the substance of them, the same in form, though as to name, title, ^ilace, and degree of the captains, there might be some, but very small variation: and here let me give you an account of the matter and sum contained in their com- mission. A Commission from the great King Shaddai^ King of JMan- soul, to his trusty and noble Captain, the Captain BoanergeSf for making war upon the town ofMansoid. * O thou Boanerges, one of my stout and thundering captains, over one ten thousand of my valiant and faithful servants. Matt. X. 11. Luke X. 5. go thou in my name, with this thy force, to the ^ . . miserable town of Mansoul, and when thou f fi f comest thither, offer them first conditions of Ti" ^} rl 1 ' P^^<5C; ^f^i *i, * • ^^^j trumpeter was come into the camp, the captains returns to the j V r ^-u • ^ ^ xr- ci ii • ^^ and officers of the mighty King Shaddai came ^"■^' together, to knoAv if he had obtained a hearing, and what was the effect of his errand. So the trumpeter told, saying, When I had sounded my trumpet, and called aloud to the town for a hearing, my Lord Will-be-Avill, the governor of the town, and he that hath charge of the gates, came up, when he heard me "ound, and, looking over the wall, he asked me Avhat I was, whence I came, and what was the cause of my making this noise? So 1 told him my errand, and by whose authority 1 * How wretchedly ai-e poor sinners enslaved to the devil, " led captive by him at his will,"' and not daring, as it were, to listen to God without hia leave. But the ministers of the gospel must persist, " whether they will hear or whetlier they will forbear." BY JOHN BUNYAN. 53 brought it. Then said he, I will tell it the governor, and to Mansoul: and then I returned to my lord. Then said the brave Boanerges, Let us yet for a while still - . lie in our trenches, and see what these rebels CaniaC souls ^^.j^ ^^^^ ^^^^ ^^.^^^^ ^^^^ ^j^^ ^^.^^^ ^.^^^ ^y^^^ ""J / ^ '^'''l'^'^^ audience by Mansoul must be given to the merpre a ion y^^^^^.^ Boanerges and his companions, it was 0/ the aesjgn oj j^oj^^^j^^^^g,]^ ^,^J^^ ^^ tl^e rnen of war through- agospeL minis- ^^^^ ^^^ ^^j^^j^ ^^^p ^^ Shaddai should, as '^' one man, stand to their arms, and make them- selves ready, if the town of Mansoul shall hear, to receive it forthwith to mercy; but if not, to force it to a subjection. So the day being come, the trumpeters sounded, and that through- cut the whole camp, that the men of war might be in readiness for that which then should be the work of the day. But when they that Avere in the town of Mansoul heard the sound of the trumpet throughout the camp of Shaddai, and tliinking no other but that it must be in order to storming the corporation, they at first were put to great consternation of spirit; but after they were alittle settled again, they made what preparation they could for a war, if they did storm; else to secure themselves. Well, when the utmost time was come, Boanerges was re- solved to hear their answer; wherefore he sent out his trumpeter again to summon INIansoul to a hearing of the message that they had brought from Shaddai: so he went up and sounded, and the townsmen came up, but made Ear-gate as sure as they could, Zech. vii. 11. Now when they were come up to the top of the „ wall. Captain Boanerges desired to see the lord Jioanerges re- j^j^y^,.. ^^^ ^^ ^^^^ Incredulity was then lord pises to make ^^^.^^,^ f^^, j^^ ^^^^ ;„ ^^e room of my Lord . ^''^'^"ff^/^ Lustings: so Incredulity came up and showed { f^ff J J himself over the wall. But when the captain he hacito deli- jjo^nerges had set his eyes upon him, he cried ver to theja- ^^^ ^\oMi\, This is not he; where is my Lord tmus town oJ Understanding, the ancient lord mayor of the jyiansouL ^^^^^ ^^ Mansoul? for to him I would deliver my message.* Then said the Giant (for Diabolus was also come down) to the captain: Mr Captain, you have, by your boldness, given to Man- soul at least four summonses, to subject herself to your king: by whose authority, I know not; nor will I dispute that now. I ask, * The ministers of Christ wish to address themselves to the understanding, but instead of this Unbelief presents himself. Ear-gate is also secured to prevent a candid attention to the word E 2 54 THE HOLY ^VAR. therefore, what is the reason of all this ado? or Avhat would you be at, if you know yourselves? Then Captain Boanerges, whose were the black colour, and jy , whose escutcheon was three burning thunderbolts J ^ (taking no notice of the giant, or of bis speech) thus " ' addressed himself to the town of Mansoul: Be it known unto yoii, O unhappy and rebellious Mansoul! that the most gracious king, the great King Shaddai, my master, hath sent me unto you, with commission (and so he showed to the town his broad seal) to reduce you to his obedience. And he hath com- manded me, in case you yield upon my summons, to carry it to you as if you were my friends or brethren; but he also hath bid, that if, after summons to submit, you still stand out and rebel, we should endeavour to take you by force. Then stood forth Captain Conviction, and said, (his were the pale colours, and for an escutcheon he had the book of the law ri M^ • n • "\vide open, kc.) " Hear, O Mansoul: Thou, O Captain Convic- ., i ^ c c • L ,. . "S , Mansoul, wast once famous for innoeency, but ^ ' now thou art degenerated into lies and deceit^ Rom. iii. 10—19, 23. chap. xvi. 17, 18. Psalm 1. 21, 22. Thou hast heard what my brother, the Captain Boanerges, hath just now said, and it is your Avisdom, and will be our happiness, to stoop to, and accept of, conditions of peace and mercy, when offered; especially when offered by one against Avhora thou hast rebelled, and one who is of power to tear thee in pieces, for so is Shaddai our king; nor, when he is angry, can any thing stand before him. If you say you have not sinned, or acted rebellion against our king, the Avhole of your doings, since the day that you cast off his service (and there was the beginning of your sin,) will sufficiently testify against you; what else means your hearkening to the tyrant, and your receiving him for your king? What means else your rejecting the laws of Shaddai, and your obeying Dia- bolus? Yea, what means this your taking up arms against, and your shutting the gates upon us the faithful servants of your king? Luke xii. 58, 59. Be ruled, then, and accept of my r, . .. ., brother's invitation, and overstand not the time He invites them ^ , ^ -^i ^i • j • i of mercv, but agree with thme adversary nuick- tO return to , a i tvt h cv ^ ^i ^c.\ ^ their la-ivful so- ^- ^^^' ^^''^"^o^l ' ^"^^1' "ot thyselt to be kept ^ , . '"^ from mercy, and to be run into a thousand mi- •^ ■ series, by the flattering wiles of Diaholus: per- haps that piece of deceit may attempt to make you believe tliat we seek our own profit in this our service: but know, it is obe- dience to our king, and love to your happiness, that is the cause of this undertaking of our's. " Again, I say unto thee, O Mansoul, consider if it be not ama- BY JOHN BUNYAN. 55 zing grace, that Shaddai should so humble himself as he doth, 2 Cor. V. 18 — 21. Now he, by us, reasons with you, in a way of intreaty and sweet persuasion, that you would subject your- selves to him. Has he that need of you, that Ave are sure you have of him? No, no; but he is merciful, and will not that Man- soul should die, but turn to him and live. "* Then stood forth Captain Judgment, whose were the red Cabtain Judo- ^^^^^^'^^ ^^^ ^^^ » scutcheon had the burning mentis speech. " ^^"^^ furnace; and he said, - O ye inhabitants of -^ the town 01 Mansoul, that have lived so long in rebellion and acts of treason against the King Shaddai; know, that we come not to-day to this place, in tliis manner, with our mes- sage, of our own minds, or to avenge our own quarrel; it is the king our master that hath sent us to reduce you to your obedi- ence to him; the which if you refuse in a peaceable way to yield, we have commission to compel you thereto. And never think of yourselves, nor yet suffer the tyrant Diabolus to persuade you to think, that our king, by his pov/er, is not able to bring you down, and lay you under his feet: for he is the Foi-mer of all things; and if he touches the mountains they smoke. Nor will the gate of the king's clemency stand always open: for the day that shall burn like an oven, is before him; yea, it hasteth greatly, and slura- bereth not, Mai. iv. 1. 1 Pet. ii. 3. O Mansoul, is it little in thine eyes, that our king does offer thee mercy, and that after so many provocations? Yea, he still holdeth out his golden sceptre to thee, and will not suffer his gate to be shut against thee: wilt thou provoke him to do it? Consider what I say; to thee it shall be opened no more for ever. Job xxxvi. 14. 18. Ps. ix .7. Isa. Ixvi. 15. ' If thou sayest thou shalt not see him, yet judgment is be- fore him; therefore trust thou in him. Yea, because there is wrath, beware lest he take thee away with his stroke; then a gi'eat ransom cannot deliver thee. Will he esteem thy riches? No, not gold, nor all the forces of strength. He hath prepared his throne for judgment; for he will come with fire, and with his chariots, like a whirlwind, to render his anger with fury, and I'ebukes with flames of fire. ' Therefore, O Mansoul, take heed, lest, after thou hast fulfilled the judgment of the Avicked, justice and judgment should take hold of thee. " * Conviction, whose scutcheon is the book of the law wide open, here ad- dresses Mansoul, declaring their rebellion and transgressions, and tracing them to the original apostacy, charging home their sins upon their conscience. Such addresses as these are likely, under God, to be very useful, accompanied, as this is, with a declaration of the good will which dictates them, and the con- descension of grace in sending such messages of mercy. It is proper to set before siuners " Judgments to come," warning every man against the fearful wrath of God, Thus did the apostle Paul warn and beseech the Ephesians night and day with tears. 56 THE HOLY WAR. Now, while Captain Judgment was making this oration to the ^ , . , - town of jSIansoul, it was observed by some that h Ti h S' ^i^bolus trembled.* But he proceeded in his / ^ ' ,,' Ji speech, and said, "Othouwoful town of Alan- lus trembles. » 1 1 i^ ^i . . . ., ^ ^ . soul! wilt thou not yet ■'et open the gate to receive us, the deputies of the king, and ihose that would rejoice to see thee live? Ezek. xxii. 14. ' Can thine heart endure, or can thine hands be strong, in the day that he shall deal in judgment with thee?' I say, canst thoa endure to be forced to drink, as one would drink sweet wine, the sea of wrath that our king has prepared for Diabolus and his angles? Consider, betimes con- sider." ... •■ Theti'stood forth the fourth captain, the noble Captain Exe- Cnhfnii T cution, and said: '' O town of Mansoul, once f- ■> I I famous, but now like the fruitless bough; once " ■ the delight of the high ones, but now a den for Diabolus: heai-kcn also to me, and to the words that I shall speak to thee in the name of the great Shaddai. Behold, ' the axe is laid to the root of the tree; every tree, therefore, that bringeth not forth good fruit, is hewn down, and cast into the fire.' Matt. iii. 7—10. "ThoUjO town of Mansoul, hast hitherto been this fi-uitless tree; thou bearest nought but thorns and briers, Deut. xxxii. 32. Thy evil fruit forespeaks thee not to be a good tree; thy grapes are grapes of gall, thy clusters are bitter. Thou hast rebelled against thy king; and lo, Ave, the power and force of Shaddki, are the axe that is laid to thy roots. What sayest thou? Wilt thou turn? 1 say again, tell me, before the first blow is given, wilt thou turn? Our axe must first be laid to thy root, before it be laid at thy root: it must first be laid to thy root in a way of threatening, before it is laid at thy root by way of execution; and between these two is i-enuired thy repentance, and this is all the time ihou hast. What wilt thou do ? Wilt thou turn, or shall I smite ? If I fetch my blow, Mansoul, down you go: for I have commission to lay my axe at^ as well as to, thy root; nor will any thing, but yielding to our king, prevent doing of execution. What art thou fit for, O Mansoul, if mercy preventeth not, but to be hewn down, and cast into the fire, and burnt? "O Mansoul! patience and forbearance do not act for ever: a ye-xr or two, or three, they may; but if thou provoke by a three year's rebellion (and thou hast already done more than this,) then what follows, but 'cut it down?' nay after that, 'thou shalt cut it down.' Luke xiii. 9. And dost thou think that these * So, when Paul reasoned of Righteousness, Temperance, and Judgment to come, Felix trembled. Alas! many tremble who never tuin. BY JOHN BUNYAN. 57 are but threaten*! ngs, or that our king has not power to execute his words ? O Mansoul, thou wilt find in the Avords of our king, Avhen they are by sinners made little orliglitof, there is not only threatening, but burning coals of fire. " Thou has been a cumber-ground long already, and wilt thou continue so still? Thy sin has brought his army to thy walls, and shall it bring in judgment to do execution to thy town? Thou hast heard what the captains have said, but as yet thou shuttest thy gates: speak out, Mansoul, wilt thou do so still; or wilt thou accept of condition3 of peace?"* These brave speeches of these four noble captains, the town of Mansoul refused to hear; yet a sound thereof did beat against Ear-gate, though the force thereof could not break it open. In Majisoul desires ^''^' ^^^ ^°''''' desired time to prepare their .. ^ , answer to these demands. The captains then time to make ^ i i ^, *i ^ t ^i u^i, * ^ ^i, told them, that if they would throw out to them answer. m ^i ^ • .1 ^ xv i. ^1 one Ill-pause that was in the town, that they might reward him according to his works, then they would give them time to consider; but if they would not cast him to them rr, J J, over the wall of Mansoul, then they would Uhon -what con- . ^i ^ • 1 xu 1 ,.|. , give them none: for, said they, we know, . . 77 • that so long as Ill-pause draws breath in Man- tams -would srive , n 1 -i ^- -n v r ., . "^ soul, all good considerations will be conioun- ded, and nothing but mischief will come thereon. Then Diabolus, who was there present, being loth to lose ■r,. , , . ^ Ill-pause, because he was his orator (and yet iJiaboLUS inter- , * 1! 1 1 1 1 ^1 ^ • i, 1 • 1 .^ _,, , be sure he had, could the captains have laid riipts them, and ^, . ^ , • x 1 j i. ^t • • f T I j-f their fingers on him,) was resolved at this in- ^, " stant to give them answer by himself; but then to ans-iver them. , •!,• • a \ jj\u*i changing his mind, he commanded the then lord-mayor, the Lord Incredulity, to do it; saying, My lord, do you give these renegades an answer, and speak out, that Mansoul may hear and understand you. So Incredulity, atDiabolus's command, began and said, "Gen- „. , tlemen, you have here, as we do behold, to the " * disturbance of our prince, and molestation of the * There is much energy in this speech. In this manner faithful ministers, knowing the terrors of the Lord, should persuade men. These pungent addresses to the conscience are often blessed of God to the conversion of souls. Yet all this, without the power of his spirit, will not prove effectual. Sinners will consult with flesh and blood, and, though partly convinced, will pause and delay, and defer submission to the call of God. The captains therefore require that Ill-pause should be thrown over the wall to them, for indeed, no good will be done in the soul, till this spirit of i)roci-astination be destroyed. 5S THE HOLY WAR. town of INIansGul, encamped against it: but from whence you come, we will not know; and what you are we will not believe Indeed, you tell us in your terrible speech, that you have this au- thority from Shaddai; but by what right he commands you to do it, of that we sliall be yet ignorant. " You have also, by the authority aforesaid, summoned this town to desert her lord, and for protection to yield up herself to the great Shaddai, your king: flatteringly telling her, that if she will do it, he will pass by; and not charge her with her past offences. " Further, you have also, to the terror of the town of Mansoul, threatened with great and sore destruction t'O punish this corpo- ration, if she consent not to do as your wills would have her. "Now captains, from whencesoever you come, and though mi j^ ^- your desisrns be ever so right, yet know ye, that ±116 tni6 t)lC~ »'./ t f L J- f neither my lord Diabolus, nor I his servant ^ J' Inci'edulity, nor yet our brave Mansoul, doth re- gard either your persons, message, or the king that you say hath sent you: his power, his greatness, his vengeance, we fear not; nor will we yield at all to your summons. *' As for the war that you threaten to make upon us, we must therein defend ourselves as well as we can: and know ye, that we are not without wherewithal to bid defiance to you. And in short, (for I will not be tedious,) I tell you,that we take you to be some vagabond runagate crew, who, having shaken off all obedience to your king, haVe gotten together in a tumultuous man- ner, and are ranging from place to place, to see if, through those flatteries you are skilled to make, on the one side, and threats wherewith you think to fright on the other, you can make some silly town, cityj or country, to desert their place, and leave it to you: but Mansoul is none of them. " To conclude: We d\'ead you not, we fear you not, nor will we obey your summons: our gates we will keep shut against you, our place we will keep you out of; nor will we long thus suffer you to sit down before us. Our people must live in f^uiet: your appearance doth disturb them, Luke xi. 21, wherefore, arise with bag and baggage, and be gone, or we Avill let fly from the walls {a) against you."* (a) Flesh. This oration, made by old Incredulity, ended by desperate Will-be-will, in words to this eftect: * This is the true langfuage of unbelief. We will not know— we will not believe — we will not submit — we must not be disturbed — therefore ye minis- UiVi of Christ be gone or we will persecute yoj. BY JOHN BUNYAN. 59 " Gentlemen, we have heard your demand, and the noise of „,, ^ , /, your threats, and heard the sound ofyour summons: The speech of -^ . ^ .. c i . , / d W'iL ^"^^ ^^^' ^ ^'^^"^ lorce, we regard not your . ... ' threats, but we will abide as you found us. And "^' ' we command you, that m three days time you cease to appear in these parts, or you shall know what it is once to dare to offer to rouse the lion Diabolus, when asleep in the town of Mansoul." The recorder, whose name was Forget-good, he also added rpj f. >] f ^^ foUoweth: " Gentlemen, my lords, as you ■p " /, see, have with mild and gentle words answered ^ J ^ your roueh and ansrry speeches: they have, recorder. •' °. i * • i • ^i moreover, in my hearing,given you leave quietly to depart as you came: wherefore take their kindness, and be gone. We might have come out with foi'ce upon you, and have caused you to feel the dint of our swords: but as we loveeaseand quiet ourselves, so we love not to hurt or molest others." rr,, , , Then did the town of Mansoul shout for joy: as I netOtVnreSOLV- .r-, irv l i ^^_• X J i , . T . I if by Diabolus and his crew some s:reat advantage ed to -withstand , , , w • i *i, <. • t-i , / / • . '^^^ been obtained over the captains. 1 hey ^ ' * also rang the bells, and made merry, and danc- ed upon the walls. Diabolus also returned to the castle, and the lord-mayor and recorder to their places; but the Lord Will-be-will took special care that the gates should be secured with double guards, double bolts, and double locks and bars. And thatEar-gate, especially, might be the better looked to (for that was the gate, in at which the king's forces sought most to enter,) the Lord Will-be-will made one old Mr Prejudice (an angry and ill-conditioned fellow) „„ , J /• J /• captain of the ward at that gate; and put un- The band of deaf , *^ , . . , ^^ \ a c ^ .. IX- der his power sixty men, called deal men; men set to keep j ^ r ^.u / • r v. „ ^ men advantageous for that service, forasmuch '^^'^ ^' as they mattered no words of the captain, nor of the soldiers.* * How often do poor mistaken sinners rejoice in their sins, and glory in their shame; but small cause for joy have tliey, who reject the counsel of God against themselves. Ivliserabie is the state of that man, whose prejudices shut his ears against the gospel of salvation, and who is deaf to all the calls of God. 60 THE HOLY WAR. CHAPTER V. The captains attack the town, and are violently resisted. They retire to winter quarters. Tradition, Human-wisdom, and Man's Invention taken pri- soners. Hostilities renewed. A famine in Mansoul; and a mutiny. The Town sounds a parley. Propositions made and rejected. Lord Understand- ing and Mr Conscience quarrel with Incredulity. A skirmish ensues, and mischief is done. NOW w lien the captains heard the answer of the great ones, and that they could not get a hearing from the old natives of the town, antl that Mansoal was resolved to give the king's army „. . hattle; they prepared themselves to receive them, , \ . and to try it out by the power of the arm. And,- . , y first, they made their force more tormulable against Ear-gate; for they knew, that unless tliey could penetrate that, no good could be done upon the town. This done, they put the rest of their men in their places. After which, they gave out the word, which was Ye must be borhf rr<7 r 7 i AGAIN.* Then they sounded the trumpet: The battle oes[un. ^-t ^x, • ^\ a. i ..u -^.u "^ then they in the town made the ansAver, with shout against shout, charge against chai'ge, and so the battle began. Now they in the town had planted upon jVIansoul, over ™ Ear-gate, two great guns, the one called High- ^ 7 .7 . mind, and the other Headv. Unto these two planted upoii ' , . ^ i v, .\ ' ,. • ^\ '„ -^ guns they trusted much; they were cast in the '^ ' castle by Diabolus' founder, whose name was Mr Puff-up; and mischievous pieces they Avere. But so vigilant and watchfu^ Avere the captains Avhen they saw them, that though sometimes their shot would go by their ears with a Avhiz, yet they did them no harm. By these two guns, the toAvnsfolk made no question but greatly to annoy the camp of Shaddai, and well enough to secure the gate; but they had not much cause to boast of what execution they did, as from Avhat fellows Avill be gath- ered. The famous Mansoul had also some other small pieces in it, of Avhich they made use against the camp of Shaddai. * The doctrine of the New-BirUi should be much insisted upon. Our Lord himself began with it when teaching Xicodemus, John iii. 3. This great truth is often very startling to a carnal mind, and objected to as of old — "How can these tbings be?" Many would get rid of all its force, by referruigit to bap- tism, and others, with equal ignorance, think it means the resurrection. Much opposition may be expected to this leading truth, a.s long as men are " heady and high-minded,'''' which is signifud by the two guns mounted upon the wall. From this sort of artillery, however, ministers of thy gT*spel have little to fear, their shots may whiz, but cannot wouuU. BY JOHN BUNYAN. 61 They from the camp also did as stoutly, and with as much of that as may in truth be called valour, let fly as fast at the town, and at Ear-gate; for they saw, that unless they could break open Ear-gate, it would be but in vain to batter the wall. How the The tence ^'"o'^ captains had brought with them several and Solver of ^^^"»^ ^.^^ ^^^° °^' ^^^'^^ battering rams; with , ■' 't '' their slings, therefore, they battered the houses and "people of the town, and with their rams they sought to break Ear-gate open. The camp and the town had several skirmishes and brisk en- counters; while the captains, with their engines, made many brave attempts to break open or beat down the tower that was over Ear-gate, and at the said gate to make their entrance: but The to-wn stout- Mansoul stood it out so lustily, through the 1 , ff, 1 * rage ot Uiabolus, the valour of the Lord Will- 1*1. ^j'- be-will, and the conduct of old Incredulity the and the captains . ■»«- t-. ^ j .i i >.. ^ return to their "^^y°^'' ^"^^ ^^^* Forget-good, the recorder, that ■winter quarters. ^^^ ''^arge and expense of that summer's wars ^ ' (on the king's side) seemed to be almost entire- ly lost, and the advantage to return to Mansoul: but when the captains saw how it was, they made a fair retreat, and intrenched themselves in tlieir winter-quarters.* a * i-^L- Now in this war, you must needs think ^n account of this ,, ^ ^ i. .i -j r. .., / , there was much loss on both sides, ot •war, -with reference to . . . , , jixi.i_-i--r .7 , h fi ' I which be pleased to take this briet account ■ following. The king's captains, when they marched from the court to come against Mansoul to war, as they came crossing over the country, they happened to light upon three young men that had Th th - ^ mind to go for soldiers; proper men they were ,,. ^ and men of courage (and skill) to appearance. Their names were Mr Tradition, Mr Human Wisdom, and Mr Man's Invention. So they came up to the captains, and proffered their service to Shaddai. The captains then told them of their design, and bid them not to be rash in their offers; but the young men told them, that they had con- sidered the thing before, and that he-aring they were upon their march for such a design, came hither on purpose to meet them, that they might be listed under their excellencies. Then Cap- tain Boanerges, for that they were men of courage, listed them into his company, and so away they went to the war. * How long do sinners, frequently, resist the Holy Ghost in his word. Satan is unwilling to lose his prey, and unbelief is loth to submit. Ministers of the gospel may almost despair of success, yet must they persevere, whether men will hear, or whether they will forbear." 62 THE HOLY WAR. Now when tne war was begun, in one of the briskest skirmish- es, so it was, that a company of the lord Will-be-will's men sallied out of the sally ports, or posterns of the town, and fell in upon the rear of Captain Boanerges' men, Avhere these three fellows happened to be, so he took them prisoners, and away they carried them into the town; where they Ihey are taken j^^j- ^^^ j^j^ ^^^^ .^^ durance, but it began to be prisoners. noised about the streets of the town, what three notable prisoners the Lord Will-be-will's men had taken, and brought in prisoners out of the camp of Shaddai. At length tidings thereof were carried to Diabolus to the castle, to wit, what my Lord Will-be-will's men had done, and whom they had taken pi'isoners. Then Diabolus called for Will-be-will to know the certainty of this matter. So he asked him, and he told r/iei/ are ^^^^ ,j,^^^^ ^j^j ^^^ ^^^^^^ ^^^^ fo^. i|,g ^^^^^ broitght bejore ^^^^.^^ ^^^^ ^^^^ ^1^^^ ^^.^^.^ ^^^^^^ l^g demand- Diabolus, and ^^ ^^ ^^^^ ^^^^^ ^^^^^ ^^,^^.g^ whence they came, are content to ^^^^ ^^,^^^^ ^^^^^ ^i^- j^^ ^j^^ ^^^p ^f Shaddai.' fight under /us ^^^ ^^^^^, ^^^^ j^j^^^^ ^j^g^^ ^le sent them into bawier. ^^^,^ again. Not many days after, he sent for them to him again, and then he asked them if they would be ■willing to serve him against their former captains? They then told him, that they did not so much live by religion, as by the fates of fortune; and that, since his lordship was willing to enter- tain them, they should be willing to serve him. Now while things were thus in hand, there was one captain Any-thing, a great doer in the town of Mansoul, and to this Any-thmg. ^^^^.^^^^^ Any-thing did Diabolus send these men, with a note under his hand, to receive them into his company; the contents of which letter were these: "Any-thing, my darling, the three men that He therejore ^^^ ^^^^ bearers of this letter, have a desire to sends them to ^^^^.^ ^^^ j^^ ^j^^ ^^,^^^ ^^^^, j^.^^^ 1 l,ettej. ^q ^^hose ^"/''^"^ -f '^^"conduct to commit them, than to thine; receive Mng with a ^j^^^^ therefore in my name, and as need shall re- ^^^^''' quire, make use of them against Shaddai and his men. Farewell." So they came, and he re- Any-tlung re- ^gj^.^^j ^i^^^^^ ^^d he made two of them sergeants; ceivcs them ^^^ j^^ ^^.^^^ ^j^, Man's Invention his armour into his ser- ^^^j.^^. * B^t ^\^^^ ^ueh for this, and now to re- VI ce. turn to the camp. • Tradition, Human Wisdom, and Mans Invention have loo often been en listed into tli<; service of religion, but they never did auy good to it. They BY JOHN BUNYAN. 63 They of the camp did also some execution upon the town? for f. they did beat down the roof of tlie new lord- TherooJ of ^^^^.^^ house, and so laid him more open than oldlncveduli- ,^^ ^^.^^ \,eiove. They had almost (with a sling) ty's house ^j^j^^ Lord Will-be-wllI outright; but he beaten down. ^^^^ ^^.^^^ ^^ recover again. But they made a notable slaughter among the aldermen, for with only one shot they cut off six of them; to wit, Mr Swearing, Mr Six aldermen ^yj^^^.j^g^ Mr Fury, Mr Stand-to-lies, MrDrunk- *^^'"- enness, and Mr Cheating.* They also dismounted the two great guns that stood upon the tower over Ear-Gate, and laid them flat in The t-wo great ^^^^ ^j^,^^ j ^^j^ ^^^^ before, that the king's gims dismount- ^^^^^^ captains had drawn off to their winter ^"- quarters, and had there intenched themselves and their carriages, so as with the best advantage to their king, and the greatest annoyance to the enemy, they might give the seasonable and warm alarms to tlie town of Mansoul. And this design of them did so hit, that I may say they did almost what they would to the molestation of the corporation. For now could not Mansoul sleep securely as before, nor could they now go to their debaucheries with that Contmual quietness as in times past: for they had from the alarins given ^^^^ ^^ Shaddai such frequent warm alarms; yea, to Mansoul. ^^^^^^ ^^^^ alarms, first at one gate and then at another, and again at all the gates at once; that they were broken as to former peace: yea, they had their alarms so frequently, and ^j jr. ,.that when the nights were at the longest, the Iheejfects V ^^^^^^ coldest, and so consequently the season con-Dictions, j^ost unseasonable, that that winter was to the town though com- ^^ Mansoul a winter by itself. Sometimes the trum- mon,ifabid- ^^^^ would sound, and sometimes the slings would ^''•^' Avhirl the stones into the town. Sometimes ten thousand of the king's soldiers would be running round the walls of Mansoul at midnight, shouting, and lifting up their voice for the battle. Sometimes again, some of them m The toivn ^^^ ^^^^^^ would be wounded, and their cry and la- rmich molested. ^^^^^^^^^^ voice would be heard, to the great mo- are not to be depended upon; and are far more in their eiement when engaged on the contrary side. Let Captain Any-thing have them and welcome; the eospel of Jesus needs not their services. , .. ^. . * Here is some good effect of the preached word: unbelief is, in part, un- veiled and discovered; the stubborn will receives a shock, and some gross irnmoi-alities are discarded; the guns are also silenced.--" Heady and High mind," that is, pride, is somewhat brought down. 64 THE HOLY WAR. lestation of the now languishing town of Mansoul. Yea, so dis- tressed wei*e they with those that laid siege against them, that I dare say Diabolus their king had in these days his rest much broken. In those days, as I was informed, new thoughts, and thoughts „, - that began to run counter one to another, by de- tJiang^e oj g^.^^^ possessed the minds of the men of the town of thoughts in ^£j^„soul. Some would say, "There is no living thus." JMansQUl. others would then reply, "This will be over shortly." Then would a third stand up and answer, "Let us turn to King Shaddai, and so put an end to all these troubles." And a fourth would come in with a fair speech, saying, " I doubt he will not receive us. "* The old gentleman too, the recorder, that was so before Dia- ^ . bolus took Mansoul, he also began to talk aloud, Lojiscience ^^^ ^^^^ words were now to the town of Mansoul as spea s. ^g j^ ^^^ were great claps of thunder. No noise now so terrible to Mansoul as was his, with the noise of the soldiers, and shoutings of the captains.f Also things began to grow scarce in Mansoul; now the things n r • • that her soul lusted after departed from her, Luke Jijaminein^^^ 14, 15. Upon all her pleasant things there was JllansoiU. ^ ^j^g^^ ^^^ burning instead of beauty. Wrinkles now, and some shows of the shadow of death, were upon the in- habitants of Mansoul. And now, O how glad would Mansoul have been to have enjoyed quietness and satisfaction of mind, though joined with the meanest condition in the world !:t^ The captains also, in the deep of winter, did send, by the „, mouth of Boanerges's trumpeter, a summons to J hey are sum- ^^^^^^^^^ j.^ y^^,l^^ ^p herself to the king, the mojied again to ^^^^^ j^^^^ Shaddai. They sent it once, and ^^^ '' ' twice, and thrice; not knowing but that at some time there might be in Mansoul some willingness to surrender up * Further degrees of success; the false peace, which before prevailed, is ef- fectually disturbed by abiding convictions. Alarm follows alarm; and somefaint inclinations arise towards peace with God; which, however, the sinner begins to fear may not be practicable. t Conscience, which had long been unfaithful and silent, awakes from his lethargj', and begins to speak, yea, to cry aloud; and conscience has a dread- full voice, more awful than thunder. X A famine in Mansoul;— the pleasures of sin begin to fail. The case ot the prodigal is here referred to; tie never thought of returning to his father till he began to be in want. The dreary season of winter adds to the afflic- tion: the summer of gaiety is gone; the winter of affliction succeeds. This affords a favourable opportunity to the ministers of Christ to renew their message, and press home on the mind the great concerns of salvation. But still Satan rctaiiis his power through the influence of unbelief. BY JOHN BUNYAN. 65 themselves unto them, might tliey but have the colour of an invita- tion to do it undei*. Yea, so far as I could gather, the town had been surrendered up to them before now, had it not been for the op- position of old Incredulity, and the fickleness of the thoughts of -- ,. mv Lord Will-be-will. Diabolus also began to rave; J\ianso7il 111 ^ c Tvi 1 x-11- ^ I .. wherefore Mansoul, as to yieldmg, was not as yet all of one mind, therefore they still lay distressed under these preplexing fear*.. I told you but now, that they x. ' the king's army had this winter sent three times to Mansoul, to snbmit herself. The first time the trumpeter went, he went with w^ords of peace; telling them, that the captains, the noble captains of rpj ^ Shaddai, pitied and bewailed the misery of the f tJ f! > t ^'^^^ perishing town of Mansoul, and were trou- •^ • bled to see them stand so much in the ■tvay of summons. ,, . , ,. tt • i lu i. their own deliverance. He said moreover, that the captains bid him tell them, that if now poor Mansoul would humble herself, and turn, her former rebellions and most no- torious treasons, should by their merciful king, be forgiven them, yea, and forgotten too. And having bid them beware that they stood not in their own way, that they opposed not themselves, nor made themselves their own losers; he returned again into the camp. The second time the trumpeter went, he treated them a little rpi . more roughly; for, after sound of trumpet he told n.j 1 them, that their continuing in their rebellion did '' but chafe and heat the spirit of the captains, and summons. ^, ^ , , , , ^ ^ c that they were resolved to make a conquest oi Mansoul, or lay their bones before the town walls. He went again the third time, and dealt with them yet more rp, .^ . roughly; telling them, that now, since they had ft] tl '- 1 ^^^^ so horribly profane, he did not know, not ^ certainly know, whether the captains w ere inclin- summons. , , ■' '. , i • 1 1 ^i ed to mercy or judgment; only, said he, they com- manded me to give you a summons to open the gates unto them: so he returned, and went into the camp. These three summons, and especially the two last, so dis- mj . J tressed the town, that they presently called a r ^ /, V ; consultation, the result of which was this, tnat J P J' my Lord Will-be-will should go up to Ear- gate, and there, with sound of trumpet, call to the captains of the camp for a parley. Well, the Lord Will-be-will sounded upon the wall; so the captains came up in their harness, with their ten thousands at their feet. The townsmen then told the F 2 66 THE HOLY WAR. m, . , ; captains that they had heard and considered 1 hey propound ^,*. •' , ,, j-f. ^ n their summons; and would come to an agree- . "^ raent with them and with their Kins' bhaddai, agreement. , ^ . ^ ^. , °, .' "^ upon such certain terms, articles, and proposi- tions, as, with and by the order of their prince, they to them were appointed to propound: to wit, they would agree upon these grounds to be one people with them. 1. "Tf that those of their own company, as the now lord- V - f -f - h 7" mayor, and their Mr Forget-good, with their ^ ^ ' brave Lord Will-be-will, might, under Shad- dai, be still the governors of the town, castle, and gates of Man soul. 2. ''Provided that no man, that now served under the great „ ,, giant Diabolus, be by Shaddai cast out of house, . . . ^ harbour, or the freedom that he hath hitherto enjoy- ^ ' ed in the famous town of Mansoul. S. **That it shall be granted them, that they of the town of rri • J X. . Mansouli enjoy certain of theu- rights and privile- T/urd profjo- ^ -.i i r ii .i . -' -^ ges; to wit, such as have tormerly been granted them, and that they have long lived in the enjoy- ment of, under the reign of their king Diabolus, that now is, and long has been, their only lord and great defender. 4. *'That no new law, officer, or executioner of law or I, ., . office, shall have any power over them, witliout Fourth pro-^, . ' , . j *. , ■ . ^ their own choice and consent. ^ ' "These be our propositions, or conditions of peace; and upon these terms, said they, we will submit to your king."* But when the captains had heard this weak and feeble offer of the town of Mansoul, and their high and bold demands, they made to them again, by their noble captain, the Captain Boan- erges, this speech following: " O ye inhabitants of the town of Mansoul, when I heard your ry , trumpet sound for a parley with us, I can truly sav, JtjOQ.iicr'^cs I. J ' J ^ 7 ^ I was glad; but when you said vou were willing to answer. i, -f i .. t - ^ ' i ir- .i t submit yourselves to cur Lord and King, then was I yet more glad: but when, by your silly provisoes and foolish cavils, you laid the stuml)ling-block of your iniquity before your faces, then was my gladness turned into sorrow, and my hopeful beginnings of your return, into languishing and fainting fears. * Sinners, when alarmed by fears of hell, arc sometimes willing to become religious extcniall-j, provided they may retain their worldly lusts; they dn ready to assume t'ae form of godliness, but dislike its power. BY JOHN BUNYAN. 67 "I count, that old Ill-pause, the ancient enemy of Mansoul, drew up these proposals that now you present us with, as terms of an agreement; but they deserve not to be admitted to sound m the ear of any man that pretends to have service for Shaddai, 2 Tim. ii. 19. We do therefore jointly, and that with the highest disdain, refuse, and reject such things, as the greatest of iniquities. "But, O Mansoul, if you will give yourselves into our hands, or rather into the hands of our king, and will trust him to make such terms with you, and for you, as shall seem good in his eyes (and I dare say, they will be such as you shall find to be most profitable to you,) then we will receive you, and be at peaee with you: but if you like not to trust yourselves in the arms of Shaddai our king, then things are but where they were before, and we know also what we have to do."* Then cried out old Incredulity, the lord-mayor, and said. Old Incredulity's "4"^ ^^^°' ^^'^^^ ^^^ of the hands of their en- reply. emies, as ye see ye are now, will be so foolish as to put the staff out of their own hands into the hands of they know not who? I, for my part, will never yield to so unlimited a proposition. Do you know the manner Unbelief never is ^"^"^ temper of their king? 'Tis said by profitable in talk, f^^^' that he will be angry with his subjects, but always speaks *^ ^^^ ^^^ breadth of an hair they chance to mischievously. ^^^P .°^^ ^^ ^^^ '■''^y- ^nd by others, that he requu-eth of them much more than they can perform. Wherefore it seems, O Mansoul, to be thy wisdom to take good heed what thou dost in this matter; for if you once yield, you give up yourselves to another, and so you are no more you own, wherefore to give up yourselves to an unlimited power, is the greatest folly in the world; for now indeed you may repent; but can never justly complain. But do you indeed know, when you are his, which of you he will kill, and which of you he will save alive? or whether he will not cut off every one of us, and send out of his country another new people, and cause them to inhabit this town?"t This speech of the lord-mayor undid all, and threw flat to the This speech^^^^^^ *-^^"' hopes of an accord: wherefore the undid all. *^*P<^^'"s returned to their trenches, to their tents, and to their men, as they were; and the mayor to the castle, and to his king. • "vT-^^^b ^'J^^ ^^^^^ proposed, can never be admitted by Jesus Cbiist; for it IS his will, that " every one w ho nameth his name must depart from in- t Unbelief ever suggests bard thoughts of God, and represents his service as an mtolerable burden. This is liateful to God, but pieasetli the devil. 68 Tin: IIOl-Y WAR. Now 13ialiulus hatl waited for his return, tor lie had lieard that they had heen at tlieir point.*. So uhen lie was come into the chamber of state, Diabolus saluted him with, "Welcome, my Lord; how went matters betwixt you to day?" I'hen the Lord Incredulity (with a low conge) told him the Avhole of the matter, saying. Thus said the cajitain of Shaddal, and thus and n t 'f hJ 7 ^^^^ ^***i ^* T^^^ which, as it was told to Diabo- t! d ri ^^^> '^^ ^^^ ^^^'y ^^^^ ^° ^^^^'^"•> *"*' ^^'^' " ^^y io»'^- le en . mayor, my faitliful Incredulity, 1 have proved thy fidelity above ten times already, but never found thee false. I do promise thee, if we rub over this brunt, to prefer tliee to a place of honour, a place far better than to be lord-mayor of ^lansoul: I will make thee my universal deputy; and thou shalt, next to me, have all nations under thy hand; yea, and thou shalt lay hands upon tlicm, that they may not resist thee; nor shall any of our vassals walk more at liberty, but those that shall be content to Avalk in thy fetters. " Now came the lord-mayor out from Diabolus, as if he had ob- „, , , tained a favour indeed; wherefore to hishabita- . , , ^ r' tion he sroes m great state, and thinks to feed tn hopes of pro- ,. .r.'^ ,, ° , .., , ,.,,, . ^ •' -^ himselt well enougli with hopes, until the time come that his greatness sliould be enlarged. But now, though the lord-mayor and Diabolus did thus well agree, yet this repulse to the brave captains put Mansoul into a mutiny; for while old Incredulity went into the castle, to con- gratulate with his lord on what had passed, the old lord-mayor, „, , , that was so before Diabolus came to the town, Tne iinderstana- ^ .^ ^ 1 tt 1 + r 1 4i u , . to wit, mv Lord Understanding, and the old inoc and consci- { \t n • 4.4.- • * n- ■^ J . recorder INIr Conscience, getting intelligence ence Oesriii to re- £• 1 ^ 1 1 1 ^ t^ " ,. ! r ■^ . ^. of what had passed at bar-gate (tor you must ceive conviction, , .1 * .1 • 1 ^ ♦ r a- i ,. 1 - ^ ^, ' know that thev miglit not be suttered to be at a7id set the soul .,.,,. 'i ^ ^i u 1 1 ^1 1, , , , , tliat debate, lest they should then have mutinied tor the captains;) but I say, they got intelligence what had passed there, and were much concerned therewith; wherefore they getting some of the town together, began to possess them v.ith the reasonableness of the noble captains' demands, and with the bad consequences that would follow upon the si)eech of old Incredulity, the lord-mayor; to wit, how little x'everencc he showed therein, cither to the cap- tains, or their king; also how he implicitly charged them with unfaithfulness and treachery: for what less, quoth he, could be made of his words, when he said he would not yield to their proposition? and added, moreover, a supposition that he would destroy us, when before he had sent us word that he would BY JOHN BUNYAN 69 show us mercy? The multitude, bein.^ now possessed with the A mutiny in <^o"^''<^<^*oi^ o^^he evil old Incredulity had done, Mamoul. ^^^^J^ to run together by companies in all places, and in every corner of the sti-eets of Mansoul; and first they began to mutter, tlien to talk openly; and after tliat they ran to and fro, and cried as they ran, O the brave captains of Sliaddai! Would we Avere under the government of tlie captains, and of Shaddai their king!* When the lord- mayor had intelligence that Mansoul was in an uproar, down he comes to appease the people, and thought to have quashed their heat with the bigness and show of his countenance. But when they saw him, they came running upon him, and had doubtless done him mischief, had he not betaken himself to his house. However, they strongly assaulted the house where he was, to have pulled it down about his ears; IncreduliUj ^^^ ^^^ V^^c,^ was too strong, so they failed of seeks to quiet ^^^^- , J^^"" ^^' ^^^^''S some courage, addressed the people. 'ii'^self out of a window to the people in this man- ^ ^ ' ner. " Gentlemen, what is the reason that there is such an uproar here to day?" Understanding. Then answered my Lord Understanding. My Lord Un- " ^^ ^^ ^^^^ because thou and thy master have derstanding an^ f^"'^^^ '\ ^^V^js^i^y' ^"^ ^^ ^^^ should, to sxoers him. captams of Shaddai; for in three things you are faulty: First, in that you would not let Mr Conscience and myself be at the hearing of your discourse. Secondly, in that you propounded such terms of peace to the captains which could by no means be granted, unless they had intended that their Shaddai should have been only a titular prince; and that Mansoul should still have had power, by law, to have lived in all lewdness and vanity before him, and so by conse- quence Diabolus should still here be king in power, and the other only king in name. Thirdly, for that thou didst thyself, after the captains had showed us upon what conditions they would have received to mercy, even undo all again with thy unsavoury, unseasonable, and ungodly speech. " Incredulity. When old Incredulity had heard this speech. Sin and the soul ^'^ ^''"'^'^ °"^' " Treason! treason! to your arms! at odds. ^° ^'°"^ ^^"^^ • ^ y ^' t'^^ trusty friends of Diabo- lus in Mansoul!" * When the understanding- is somewhat enlightened, and tlie conscience awakened, unbelKl' is in danger of destruction. There will thew be a party in the soul on the Lord's side. This is called a mutiny. A blessed mutiny it is, when unbelief begins tobeopposed, and the sweet hopeof paidoningmercy dienshed; then, as tiie margin says, " Sin and die soul are at odds." 70 THE HOLY WAR, Understanding. " Sir, yon may put upon my words M-hat meaning you please, but I am sure the captains of such an higli Lord as theirs is, deserved a better treatment at your hands." Incredulity. Then said old Incredulity, " This is but little rrely apply for further assisunce. 76 THE HOLY WAR. '* Now, kings of kings, let it please thee to pardon the un- successful ness of thy servants, who have heen no more advan- tagi^ous in so desirable a work as the conquering of Mansoul is: and send, Lord, as Ave now desire, more forces to Mansoul, that it may be subdued; and a man to head them, that the town may both love and fear. " We do not thus speak because we are willing to relinquish the war (for we are for laying our bones against the place,) but that the town of Mansoul may be won for thy Majesty. We also pray thy Majesty, for expedition in this matter, that, after conquest, we may be at liberty to be sent about other thy gracious designs. Amen." JFho cirried ^^^ petition, thus drawn up, was sent away . 7 • fj^f-f.-fj with haste to the king by the hand of that good ^ ' man, Mr Love-to-Mansoul. When this petition was come to the palace of the king, who rr„ 7 .. should it be delivered to, but the king's son. To -whom It -was c -, , . .^ , j •. i v fu ... , bo he took it and read it; and because the con- tents of it pleased him Avell, he mended it, and also in some things added to the petition himself. So after he had made such amendments and additions as he thought conve- nient, with his own hands, he carried it unto the king: to whom when he had Avith obeisance delivered it, he put on authority, and spake to it himself.* Now the king, at the sight of the petition, was glad; but The kinP- receives ^°^^ ^^^^ *^°^^' ^^^^^ ^°^' ^'^^" ^^ '''^^ ^^" .^, ■^, , conded by his son! It pleased him also to li -with gladness. i ,, .. V • ^ I i • .. "^ hear that his servants, who encamped against Alansoul, were so hearty in the work, and so steadfast in their resolves, and that they had already got some ground upon the famous town of Mansoul. Wherefore the king called to him Immanuel his son, who rr,i 7 • 77 7 • said. Here am I, my father. Then said the The kitiP' calls his , . ^ r^, , ' -; ^ i ir *u f^„ J ■ king, Thou knowest as I do myself, the con- son, and tells him J. -^ r^r 1 1 u X /l I, .. 1 dition ot Mansoul, and what thou hast done that he shall ceo to ^ , ^,9' to red eem it. Come now therefore, my son, and prepare thy self for the war, for thou shalt co7iquer the toivn ofjlansoul; and ^ ^ ,, , . , ,, , I ■ .7 7 , V go to my camp at Mansoul; thou shalt also fie zs vteaseci at zt, ., . > % i >» ^ there prosper and prevail, and conquer the town of Mansoul. Then said the king's son, "Thy law is Avithin ray heart: I • Jesu3 Christ is our great advocate above. He receives, amends, and presents our prayers; and those petitions which have the glory of God for iheir object, cannot but be acceptable to him. BY JOHN BUNYAN. 77 n 1 ^tJ 1 ' /^delight to do thy will," Heb. x. Tliis is the ' th fl^ If f ^^^ ^'*^^ ^ have longed for, and the work that ,. .u I have waited for all this while. Grant me therefore what force thou shalt in thy wisdom think meet; and I will go, and will deliver from Diabolus, and from his power, thy perishing town of Man soul. My heart has been often pained within me, for the miserable town of Mansoul; but now it is rejoiced, but now it is glad; and with that he leap- ed over the mountains for joy, saying, I have not in my heart thought any thing too dear for Mansoul; the day of vengeance is in mine heart for thee, my Mansoul; and glad am I that thou, my father, hast made me the captain of their salvation, Heb, ii. 10. And I will now begin to plague all that have been a plague to my town of Mansoul, and I will deliver it from their hands.* When the king's son had said thus to his father, it presently The highest Deers ?^''' ^'"^^ ligl^tning round about at court: yea, • tl u' ri "it there became the only talk, what Imma- ^ ^, . nuel was to go to do for the famous town of covet to !^o on this -^r it?* *. *\ • ^ \, ..i. , . "= Mansoul. But you cannot thmk how the -^ ' courtiers too were taken with this design of the prince; yea, so affected were they with this work, and with the justness of the war, that the highest lord and greatest peer of the kingdom coveted to have commissions under Immanuel, to go and help to recover again to Shaddai that miserable town of Mansoul. t Then was it concluded that some should go and carry tidings to the camp, that Immanuel was to come to recover Mansoul; and that he would bring along with him so mighty, so impreg- nable a force, that he could not be resisted. But oh! how ready were the high ones at court to run like lacquies to carry these tidings to the camp that was at Mansoul ! Now when the captains perceived that the king would send rr,, ^ 7 ^ Immanuel his son, and that it also delighted 1 he camp shout ^y , ^ . .^- i u *u ~ . ^ , the son to be sent on this errand by the great fh h - fh Shaddai his father; they also, to show how they . ,r were pleased at the thoughts of his coming, ^ ' gave a shout that made the earth rend at the sound thereof; yea, the mountains answered the echo, and Dia- bolus himself tottered and shook. • The salvation of souls is "the pleasure of the Lord," and it shall pros- per in his hands. How does this bespeak the infinite value of an immortal spirit, and how should it engage all the people of God to seek, not only their own personal salvation, but that also of their fel'ow sinners throughout the woi-ld. t Angels are " ministering spirits to tlie heirs of salvation," and glad they are to be employed in promoting their eternal welfare G 2 78 THE HOLY WAR. Now you must know, that though the town of Mansoul itseli was not much, if at all, concerned with the project (for, alas for them! they were wofully hesolted, for they chiefly regarded their pleasure and lusts;) yet Diabolus their governor was, for he T-j. T 7 /. . , had his spies continually abroad, who brousrht Diabolus afraid , . . ;,. t- n .1 • 1 .u . u . ., "^ ^ him intelligence ot all things; and they told , . . ■^ him what was doing at court against him, and his comimr. ^u * t 1 11 ^ • 1 \ .^ ^ that Immanuel would certainly come shortly with a power to invade him. Nor was there any man in court, nor peer of the kingdom, that Diabolus so feared, as he feared this prince: for, if you remember, I showed you before, that Diabolus had felt the weight of his hand already; so that since it was he that was to come, this made him sore afraid. Well, you see liow I have told you that the king's son was engaged to come from the court to save Mansoul, and that his rm ^ • 1 father had made him captain of the forces; the The prince ad' ^. ^, ^ r u- ..■ r .u u • , ^ , . ,/. time therefore tor his setting forth being now dresses himself -ji ,1 ji- ,c c xu i f I- • expired, he addressed himselt tor the march; ■^ "^ ' ^' and taking with him, for his power, five noble captains and their forces. 1. The first was that famous captain, the noble Captain Cre- dence; his were the red colours, and Mr Promise bare them, John i. '29. Eph. vi. 16: and for an escutcheon he had the holy lamb and golden shield; and he had ten thousand men at his feet. 2. The second was that famous captain, the Captain Good Hope; his were the blue colours, Heb. vi. 19. His standard- bearer was Mr Expectation; and for an escutcheon he had three golden anchors; and he had ten thousand men at his feet. 3. The thitj'd was that valiant captain, the Captain Charity, 1 Cor. xiii. His standard-bearer was Mr Pitiful; his were the green colours, and for his escutcheon he had three n.aked or- phans embraced in the bosom; and he had ten thousand at his feet. 4. The fourth was that gallant commander, the Captain Inno- cent, Matt. X. 16. His standard-bearer was Mr Harmless; his were the white colours, and for his escutcheon he had thret golden doves. 5. The fifth was that truly loyal and well-beloved captain, the Captain Patience: his standard-bearer was Mr Sufferlong; his were the black colours, and for an escutcheon he had three arrows through a golden heart. These were Immanuel's captains, these their standard-bearers, _, .^, , n ^- their colours and escutcheons, and these Faith and Patience ^, 1 ^u • 1 t.t u • . ^, , the men under their comraan»l, Heb. vi. do the ■work. r,, a • 1 ^i u 21. So, as was said, the brave pnuce BY JOHN BUNYAN. 79 took his march, to go to the town of Man soul. Captain Credence led the van, and Captain Patience brought up the rear. So the other three, with their men, made up the main body. The prince himself rode in his cliariot at the head of them.* But when they set out for their march, oh how the trumpets rpr • 1 > h f sounded, their armour glittered, and how the , ^r t colours waved in the wind! The prince's ar- niour was all gold, and it shone like the sun m the firmament. The captains' armour was of proof, and was in appearance like the glittering stars. There were also some from the coui'tthat rode reformades,t for the love that they hafi to the king Shaddai, and for the happy deliverance of the town of Mansoul. Immanuel also, when he had thus set forwards to go to reco- rpi 7 7 J,-, J ver the town of Mansoul, took with him, at the * - • cc ' command of his father, fifty-four batterine: containing 66 j . i ,• ! i • i ^ -.u i 7 7 ^ rams, and twelve slings to whirl stones withal. Every one of these was made of pure gold; and these they carried with them in the heart and body of their army, all along as they went to Mansoul.:}. So they marched till they came within less than a league of the town; and there they lay till the first four captains came thither to acquaint them with matters. Then they took their journey to go to the town of Mansoul, and unto Mansoul they rpii^ f • • J came; but when the old soldiers that were in 1 he forces joined , ' i , , , r ~..;ti. ■ ■ • the camp saw that they had new forces to ipK/i reioicine". . . . / , . •' •' *^ join with, they again gave such a shout be- fore the walls of Mansoul, that it put Diabolus into another fright. So they sat down before the town, not now as the other four captains did, to wit, against the gates of Mansoul only, but. Mansard belea- '^^>' ^/^Yfof ^ ^^ ^^"d on every side and be- e-uered round behind and before; so that now let Man- * soul look which way it would, it saw force and * When Jesus girds his sword upon his thigh to effect the conquest of the human soul, he comes gloriously aiteudc^d with those heavenly graces — faith hope, love, innocence, and patience. Faith leads the van; patience brings up the rear. Jesus hiinst'lf, the captain of our salvation, heads the noble army, and conducts the holy war. " Ride prosperously, gracious majesty, because of truth, meekness, and nghteousness, and thy right hand shall teach thee terrible things," Ps. xlv. 4. t Reformades, an old word signifying Volunteers: the angels are intended, because "ministering spirits," who delight to expJoi-ethe wonders of redemp- tion, and to serve the heirs of salvation. X The several books of the Old and New Testament, in number 66, are here compared to military engines, such as were formerly used to batter walls and gates. These are the proper weapons of the holy war, and they are, indeed, nnghty through God to the pulling down the strong holds of the devil. 80 THE HOLY WAR. power lie in siege against it. Beside, there were mounts cast Mounts cast up "P ^^^^^ '^' /\^/^'"'''l Gracious was on the r,r^r,i..^t ,•+ ^^^ siclc, aHcl Mount Justice on the other, l-arther, there were several small hanks and advance grounds, as Plain-truth-hill, and Xo-sin-banks, where many of the slings were placed against the town. Upon Mount Gracious were planted four, and upon INIount Justice were planted as many: and the rest were conveniently placed in seve- ral parts round about the town. Five of the best battering rams, that is, of the biggest of them, Avere placed upon INIount Hearken, a mount cast up hard by Ear-gate, with intent to break that open. Now when the town of Mansoul saw the multitude, and the Til 1 . r soldiers that were come up against the place, and Ihe heart of ^, j ,• j i ^ i • i 1^ J , ^ the rams and slings, and the mounts on which . t f ■/ ^^^y "^vere planted; together with the glittering of ^ ^ * the armour, and the waving of their colours; they were forced to shift and shift, and again to shift their thoughts; but they hardly changed for thoughts more stout, but rather for thoughts more faint; for though before they thought themselves sufficiently guarded, yet, now they began to think that no man knew what would be their hap or lot.* When the good prince Immanuel had thus beleaguered Man- rpj J 'f fi soul, in the first place he hangs out the white / D- '/ ^^•^' ^^'^"^^ ^^ caused to be set among the ^ ^ ' golden slings that were planted upon Mount Gracious. And this he did for two reasons: 1. To give notice to Mansoul, that he could and would yet be gracious, if they turned to him. 2. And that he might leave them the more without excuse, should he destroy them, they continuing in their rebellion. So the Avhite flag, with the three golden doves on it, was hung out for two days together, to give them time and space to consider. But they, as was liinted before, as if tlicy were un- concerned, made no reply to the favourable signal of the prince. Then he commanded and they set the red flag upon that Th I fi mount called Justice. It was the red flag of . / Captain Judgment, whose escutcheon was the burn- ^ ' ing fiery furnace: also this stood waving before * Thus the soul which the Lord designs to save is surrounded on al] sides. Grace and justice, ])l;uii truth, and upposition to sin, are visible on every liaud. Thus many searching^ of heart are excited, meu's hearts failing for fear, not knowing what the end of these things will be. But the white Hag Rufficiently intimates the merciful designs of Immanuel, so, in preaching tlie g'o«j)el, mercy is the prominent object. BY JOHN BUNYAN. 81 them iu the wind for several days together. But look how they carried it under the white flag, when that was hung out, so did they also when the red one was; and yet he took no advantage of them. Then he commanded again that his servants should hang out , . , ^ the hlack flag of Defiance against them, whose 1 he black Jlag gggutcheon was the three burning thunderbolts. hung out. g^^ ^g unconcerned was Mansoul at this, as at those that went before. But when the prince saw that neither mercy nor judgment, nor execution of judgment, would or could come near the heart of Mansoul, he was touched with much compunction, and said, Surely this strange carriage of the town of Mansoul doth rather arise from ignorance of the manner and feats of war, than from a secret defiance of us, and abhorrence _,, . , nf their own lives; or, if they know the manner Christ makes not ^^ ^^^^ ^^,^^ ^^ ^,^^.^, ^^^^ ^^^ ^^^^ ^^^ ^i^^^ ^^^ •war as the world ^^^^^^^;^^ ^f the wars in which we are con- "°^^* cerned, when I make wars upon mine enemy Diabolus. Therefore he sent to the town of Mansoul, to let them know what he meant by those signs and ceremonies of the flag; and . also to know of them which of the things they will Be sends to ^^^^^^ whether grace and mercy, or judgment, and kno-wij they ^^^ execution of judgment. All this while they -would have ^^^^ ^^^ ^^^^^ shut as fast as they could. Their mercy or guards were also doubled, and their watch made as judgtnent. ^^^^^^ ^s they could. Diabolus also plucked up what heart he could, to encourage the town to make resistance.* The townsmen also made answer to the prince's messenger, in substance, according to that which follows: " Great Sir, as to what, by your messenger, you have sig- ^, - „ , nified to us, whether we will accept your mercy, The townsfolk s ^^, ^^^j ^^ ^.^^^ justice; we are bound, by the answer. j^^^. ^nd 'custom of this place, and can give you no positive answer: for it is against the law, government, and the prerogative royal of our king, to make either peace or war • Neither mercy nov judgment imi)resses the stony heart of man: even the black flag ofdejlance occasions no concern. O how do poor sinners heap up unto themselves wrath against the day of wrath, by thus despising the riches of his patience, forbearance and long suffering. Rom. ii. How graciously candid is the allowance made for their possible ignorance, like that of the suffering Saviour when nailed to the cross: " Father, forgive them, for they know not what they do." The meaning therefore of these flags is explained; thus must ministers deal with poor sinners, giving them " line upon line, pre- cept upon precept." But without divine grace all is in vain, Satan will still foment the spirit of resistance. 82 THE HOLY WAR. ■withoi'.t him. But this we will do, we will petition that our prince will come down to the wall, and there give you such a treatment as he shall think fit and profitahle for us." When the good prince Inimanuel heard this answer, and saw r J ■ the slavery and hondage of the people, and 7 . .1 /• 77 p how contented they were to ahide in the en at the folly of , . r .i * /-r*- i i -^ • j u- J.-- J ^ J chains of the tyrant Diabolus, it grieved him at the heart. And indeed, Avhen at any time he perceived that any were contented with the slavery of the giant, he would be affected with it.* But to return again to our purpose. After the town had carried this news to Diabolus, and had told him, moreover, that the prince, that lay in the leaguer Avithoutthe wall, waited upon T^. , , r. . , them for an answer, he refused, and huffed Diabolus afraid. „ , 1 1 u * • i * i c -a •' as well as he could, but in heart he wasalraid. Then said he, " I will go down to the gates myself, and give him such an answer as I think fit. So he went down to Mouth- gate, and there addressed himself to speak to Inimanuel (but in such language as the town understood not,) the contents whereof were as follow: " O thou great Immanuel, lord of the world, I know thee that rpi ^ 1 ^thou art the son of the great Shaddai! Wherefore T^. J \ ■ ^y art thou come to torment me, and to cast me out JJiaboLustotne c • •> rr-i.' ^ c nr i . of my possession? This town of Mansoul, as ^ ' thou very well knowest, is mine by right of con- quest; I won it in the open field: and ' shall the prey be taken fiom the mighty, or the lawful captive delivered?' 2. This to-wn of Mansoul is mine also by their subjection. They have opened the gates of their town unto me, they have sworn fidility to me, and have openly chosen me to betheirking. They have . . „ also given theircastle(a) into my hands; they have also ^a; ea . p^^. ^.j^g whole strength of Mansoul under me. "Moreover, this town of Mansoul hath disavowed thee: yea, they have cast thy law, thy name, thy image, and all that is thine, behind their back; and have accepted, and set up in their room, my law, my name, my image, and all that ever is mine. Ask else thy captains, and they will tell thee, that Mansoul hath, in answer to all their summons, show n love and loyalty to me; but always disdain, despite, contempt, and scorn to thee and thine. Now, thou who art the just one and the holy (and shouldst do no iniquity,) depart then, I pray thee, from me, and leave me to my just inheritance peaceably." • Pitiable indeed is the bonduge of sinuei-s: — " they are led captive by him at his will." BY JOHN BUNYAN. 83 This oration was made in the language of Diabolus himself; for although he can to every man speak in their language (else he could not tempt them as he does,) yet he has a language pro- per to himself, and it is the language of the infernal cave or black pit. Wherefore the town of Mansoul (poor hearts!) understood Diabolus unable ^"*f "?^= "°'" '^"^ ^^^^^ ^^^ ^o^ ^^ crouched lo stand in the crmged whde he stood before Immanuel presence of Im- \Y''' P"''^^' Y^^' ^^^y ^^^ this while took mamiel. ™ *° ^^ °"^ °^ ^^^^^ power and force that by no means could be resisted: wherefore, while he was thus intreating that he might have yet Iiis residence there, and that Immanuel would not take it h-om him by force, the inhabitants boasted even of his valour, saying. Who is able to make war with him?* Well, when this pretended king had made an end of what he would say, Immanuel the golden prince stood up, and spake; the contents of whose words follow: " Thou deceiving one, said he, I have in my father's name, in ImmanueVs "^^ ^.^"^ name, and on the behalf and for the good speech to °^ ^^^^ wretched town of Mansoul, somewhat to say Biabolus. "^^° ^^^^' '^^°^ pretendest a right, a lawful right, to the deplorable town of Mansoul, when it is most apparent to all my father's court, that the entrance which thou hast obtained in at the gates of Mansoul was through thy lies and falsehood: thou belyedst my father, thou belyedst his law, and so deceivedst the people of Mansoul. Thou pretendest that the people have accepted thee for their king, their captain, and right liege lord, but that also was by the exercise of deceit and guile. Now if lying, wiliness, sinful craft, and all manner of horrible hypocrisy, will go, in my father's court (in which court thou must be tried) for equity and right, then will I confess unto thee, that thou hast made a lawful conquest. But alas! what thief, what tyrant, what devil, is there, that may not con- quer after this sort? But I can make it appear, O Diabolus, The craft and '^^^^ ^^°"' ^"^ ''^^^ ^^^ pretences to a conquest of mbtletij of Bi- ^^^"^oul, hast nothing of truth to say. Think- abolus exposed f ^ ^^'°'' ^^^^' *" ^^ ^'S^^t, that thou didst put the by Immanuel. upon my father, and madest him (to Man- soul) the greatest deluder in the world? And what sayest thou to thy perverting, knowingly, the right pur- port and intent of the law? Was it good also that thou madest • Deceived mortals understand not the real designs of the enemy, who fii-st allures tx» sm, and then becomes an accuser. 84 THE HOLY WAR. a prey of the innocency and simplicity of the now rniserablt town of Mansoul? Yea, thou didst overcome Mansoul, by promising to them happiness in their transgressions against my father's law, when thou knewest, and couldst not but know, hadst thou consulted nothing but tliy own experience, that that was the way to undo them. Thou hast also thyself (O thou mas- ter of enmity!) of spite defaced my father's image in jNIansoul, jr ■. and set up thy own in its place; to the great con- %h T/ * tempt of my father, the heightening of thy sin, and iiha at. ^^ ^j^^ intolerable damage of the perishing town of Mansoul. "Thou hast moreover (as if all these were hut little things with thee) not only deluded and undone this place, but by thy lies, and fraudulent carriage, has set them against their own de- liverance. How hast thou stirred them up against my father's captains, and made them to fight against those that were sent of him to deliver them from their bondage! All these things, and very many more, thou hast done against thy light, and in con- tempt of my father, and his law: yea, and with design to bring under his displeasure for ever the miserable town of Mansoul. I am therefore come to revenge the wrong that thou hast done to my father, and to deal with thee for the blasphemies wlierewith thou hast made poor Mansoul blaspheme his name: yea, upon thy head, thoa prince of the infernal cave, will 1 require it. ** As for myself, O Diabolus, I am come against thee hy law- ful power; and to take, by strength of hands, this town of Man- soul out of thy burning fingers; for this town of Mansoul is mine, O Diabolus, and that by undoubted right, as all shall see that will diligently search the most ancient and most authentic records, and I Avill plead my title to it to the confusion of thy face. " First, For the town of IMansoul, my father built and „„ ^ -_ fashioned it with his hands. The palace also, Ihe totvn of Man- ^^^^ .^ .^ ^,^^ ^.^^^ ^^ ^,^^ ^^^^,^^ j^^ ^^^.^^ j-^^. soidtstherisrhtof^^.^ own delight. This town of Mansoul, iShadclai tvlio therefore, is my father's, and that by the best "^ *'• of titles; and he that gainsays the truth of this, must lie against his soul. "Secondly, O thou master of the lie, this town of Mansoul is mine: "1. For that I am my father's heir, his first-born, and the only delight of his heart, Heb. i. 2. John xv. 16. I am, there- fore, come up against thee in mine own right, even to recover mine own inhfritance out of thine hands. "2. But furtlier, as I have a right and title to Mansoul by BY JOHN BUNYAN. 85 ^ho the inhent- ^f "- ^"1 ^"'!-'''' t'I'' '°-^ ^""Z- v'^ ^^ "^^ a«ce 0//./. .on f^*'^^^^ ^on^^^on, John xvu H.s it ^vas, ana J I '^^ ?>^^^ It me: nor have 1 at any time ofiended my lather, that he should take it from me, and give it to thee, Isa. 1. 1. Nor have I been forced, by playing the bankrupt, to sell or set to sale to thee my beloved town of Mansoul. Mansoul is my desire, my delight, and the joy of my heart. But, " Mansoul is mine by right of purchase. I have bought it, O Diabolus, I have bought it for myself. Now since it was my father's and mine, as I was his heir, and since also I have made it mine by virtue of a great purchase, it folio weth, that by all lawful right the town of Mansoul is mine; and that thou art an 71- , , . usurper, tyrant, and traitor, in thy hold- er and tyraiit *"^ possession thereof. Now the cause of ^ ' my purchasing it was this: Mansoul had trespassed against my father. Now my father had said, that in the day that they broke his law, they should die: now it is more possible for heaven and earth to pass away, than for my father to break his word, Matt. v. 18. Wherefore when Mansoul had sinned indeed by hearkening to thy lie, I put in and became a surety to my father, body for body, and soul for soul, that I a f ■h ' "^^'ould make amends for Mansoul's transgres- Y J, sions: and my father accepted thereof. So when the time appointed was come, I gave body for body, scul for soul, life for life, blood for blood, and so re- deemed my beloved Man-soul. *'4. Nor did I this by halves; my father's love and justice, that were both concerned in the threatening upon transgression, are both now satisfied, and very well content that Mansoul should be delivered. "5. Nor am I come out this day against thee, but by com- mandment from my father; 'twas he that said unto me, Go down and deliver Mansoul. J- J "Wherefore be it known unto thee, O thou Immanuel com- c ^ . c a -^ a x. -^ ^ ^ x xl ■ ' rl h I ' fountain of deceit, and be it also known to the r .1 ^ foolish town of Mansoul, that I am not come ■^ ' against thee this day without my father. "And now, said the golden-headed prince, I have a word to the town of Mansoul (but so soon as mention was made, that he had a word to speak to the besotted town of Mansoul, the gates were double-guarded, and all men commanded not to give him audience;) so he proceeded and said, O unhappy town of Mansoul, I cannot but be touched wiih pity and compassion H 86 THE HOLY WAR. , 7, 7 for thee. Thou has accepted of Diabolus fot JmmanueL s ait' ,,,. j^i i--^ , , , thy kinsj:, and art become a nurse and minister dress to the toivn c ~i\- i i • • * .i • t ^ ^ , , , of Diabolnnians against thy sovereign Lord. •J " ' Thy gates thou hast opened to him, but has! shut them fast against me^ thou hast given liim a hearing, bu( hast stopt thine ears to my cry. he brouglit to thee thy destruc- tion, and thou didst receive both him and it; I am come to thee bringing salvation, but thou regardest me not. Besides, thou hast with sacrilegious hands taken thyself, with all that was mine in ihce, and hast given all to my foe, and to the greatest enemy my father lias. You have bowed and subjected yourselves to him, you have vowed and sworn yourselves to be his. Poor Mansoul! what shall I do unto thee? Shall 1 save thee!" Shall I destroy thee? What shall I do unto thee? Shall I fall upon thee, and grind thee to powder; or make thee a monument of the richest grace? What shall I do unto thee? Hearken there- fore, thou town of Mansoul, hearken to my word, and thou shalt live. I am merciful, Mansoul, and thou shalt find me so: shut me not out of thy gates, Cant. v. 2. "O Mansoul, neither is my commission or inclination at all to do thee hurt: why flyest thou so fast from thy friend, and stickest so close to thine enemy? Indeed I would have thee, because it becomes thee, to be sorry for thy sin: but do not des- pair of life: this great force is not to hurt thee, but to deliver thee from thy bondage, and to reduce thee to thy obedience. "My commission indeed is, to make war upon Diabolus thy r J, king, and upon all Diabolonians with him, Immamiers com- r i • .i i .i . i . . . . , for he is the strong man armed that keeps mission IS to make ^, , v ^t -ifi u- .. i • -i 7T , the house: but I will have him out: his spoils ivav %i hoii Jjiabo- , .^ i- • i . • i S 4. ^ ir , ■', . 1 must divide, his armour 1 must take irom Ins and to save ,. i-i,5t . ^i- ^ c a -.. , him. his hold I must cast huii out of, and must make it an habitation tor myseli. Ana this, O Mansoul, shall Diabolus know, when he shall be made to follow me in chains, and when Mansoul shall rejoice to see it too. "I could, would 1 now put forth my might, cause that forth- with he should leave you, and depart; but 1 have it in my heart so to de^l with him, as that the justice of the war, that I shall make upon him, may be seen and acknowledged by all. He hath taken Mansoul by fraud, and keeps it by violence and de- ^ 7 . r T ceit; and I will make him bare and naked in Conclusion of Im- . .• n i *ii i „ . "^ 7 the eyes ot all observers. All my words are manueVs speech. ^ \ - u. . j -n > i- ^ true: 1 am mighty to save, and will deliver my Mansoul out of his hand."* • In this spetcb of Iinmanuel, the time character of Satan is dmwn, and he is i*epresenied, as in the sacred scriptures, a liar, a deceiver, a blasphemer, au BY JOHN BUNYAN. 87 This speech was intended chiefly for Mansoul, hut Mansoul would not have the hearing of it. They shut up Ear-Gate, they barricadoed it up, they kept it locked and bolted, they set a guard thereat, and commanded that no Mansoulian should go out to him, nor that any from the camp sliould be admitted into the town ; all this they did, so horribly had Diabolus inchanted them to do, and to seek to do for him, against their rightful lord and prince; whei-efore no man, nor voice, nor sound of man that belonsred to the glorious host, was to come into the town.* CHAPTER VII. Immanuel prepares to make war upon Mansoul. Diabolus sends Mr Loth- to-stoop with proposals for accommodating' the difference. His dishonoura- ble proposals are rejected by Immanuel. Again he proposes to be Immanu- el's Deputy, and turn reformer; this proposal also rejected. New prepara- tions for buttle. A violent assault upon Ear-gate with the Battering Rams. The gate broken to pieces; the troops enter the Town; take possession of Mr Conscience's house. Several Diabolonians are killed. WHEN Immanuel saw that Mansoul was thus involved in sin, he called his army together, (since now all his words were despised, ) and gave out a commandment throughout all his hosts, to be ready against the time appointed. Now forasmuch as r 1 . there was no way lawfully to take the town of Iminanui pre- , , ^ \, .^ ^ ^ • x. \.i. . j . t^ tares to make ^^"S""^' ^"^ to get in by the gates, and at Ear- t. T\r .?^te as the chief, therefore he commanded his •war upon Mail- ^ ^ . , ' , . i • .1 • , ^ captains and commanders to bring their rams, their slings, and their men, and place them at Eye-gate and Ear-gate, in order to his taking the town. When Immanuel had put all things in readiness to bid Di- abolus battle, he sent again to know of the town of Mansoul, if in peaceable manner they would yield themselves; or whether they were yet resolved to put him to try the utmost extremity? They then, together with Diabolus the king, called a council of war, and resolved upon certain propositions that should be usurper, the malicious enemy of God and man; while Immanuel claims the human soul as his own, his workmanship, his delight, his inheritance, his purchase. That part of the speech which is directed to Mansoul, contains the charm- ing substance of the gospel of grace, the merciful design of Christ in his approaches vo the soul, which is not to destroy but to save. How well does his gracious address desti-ve the most cordial acceptation: but, mark the sequel! * Infatuated sinners! rejecting the counsel of God against themselves Reader, is this thy picture?— pause and examine. Remember, " faith cometh by hearing." " Hear, then, and your soul shall live." 88 THE HOLY WAR. offered Immanuel, if he mIH accept thereof: so they agreed; and ■n- r T 1 then the next was, who should be sent ou Jjiabohis se7ids ^, . i -kt !i • .u * t J , , , /. this errand. JNow there was in the town ot oil the hand of ^. , , , -Pk- i i • i i • j^. ^ ,•' jMansoul an old man, a Diabolonian, and his his servant jMr ^vt i i . . ^-a- • i • J fj ^ f f. name was JMr l^oth-to-stoop; a stin man in his , , ,'. V wav, and a s;reat doer for Uiabolus; him there- ajid 01/ him he ^ ' \, ^ ^ , ^ • ^ i • .u u * i, fore thev sent, and put into his mouth what he propounds con- should say. So he went, and came to the camp ditions of peace. ^ , i i i i '' ^ to Immanuel; and when he was come, a time was appointed to give him audience. So at the time he came; and after a Diabolonian ceremony or two, he thus began, and ■r\- 1 1 • 1 said, Tim. i. 16. "Great Sir, that it mav be Jjiabolns wish- , ' ^ i, , i 'j ^ • ^t known unto all men, how good-natured a es to retain the . ^ • J i .u .. ^ ^ n 1 If f vf prince my master is, he hath sent me to tell J your lordship, that he is very willing, rather than go to war, to deliver up into your hands one half of the town of Mansoul. I am therefore to know if your Mightiness will accept of this proposition?" Then said Immanuel, "The whole is mine by gift and pux'- chase, therefore I Avill never lose one half. " a J .jj ,j Then said Mr Loth-to-stoop, "Sir, my r 1.1 master hath said, that he will be content that immanuel to be i n i. ^i • i i 4.-« i i i r 11 1 J /If y^*^ shall be the nominal and titular lord of cauedl^ordoj ^^j^ .^ ^^ ^^^ possess but a part," Luke " ■ xiii. 25. Then Immanuel answered, " The whole is mine really, not in name and word only; wherefore I will be the sole lord and possessor of all, or of none at all, in iSIansoul." Then Mr Loth-to-sVoop said again, "Sir, behold the con- jtj. 1 fj ■ descension of my master! He says, that he will be content if he may but have assigned to him some place in Mansoul, as a place to live privately in, and you shall be lord ot all the rest." Acts v. 1 — 5. Then said the Golden Prince, "All that the Father giveth me, shall come to me; and of all that he hath given me I will lose nothing, no not the least corner in Mansoul to dwell in, I •will have it all to myself." Then Lotli-to-stoop said again, "But, Sir, suppose that my T,^ T ^i • 77 Lord should resign the whole town to you only Jnavk this -welU ..,.,. • ., ^ i *• i i • with this proviso, that he sometimes, when he comes into this country, may, for old acquaintance sake, be entertained as a wayfaring man for two days, or ten days, or a month, or so; may not this small matter be granted?" Then said Immanuel, '"No. He came as a wayfaring man BY JOHN BUNYAN. 89 to Da' id, nor did he stay long with him, and yet it had like tx) have cost David his soul, 2 Sam. xii. 1 — 5. I will not consent that he ever should have any harbour more there." Then said Mr Loth-to-stoop, "Sir, you seem to be very hard. Si?i and ccv'- ^"PP"^*^ ^Y master should yield to all tliat your 7iallu'>t lordship hath said, provided tha<; his friends and kindred in Mansoul may have liberty to trade in the town, and to enjoy their present dwellings; may not that be granted, Sir?" Then said Immanuel, " No; that is contrary to my Father's will, Rom. vi. 13. Col. iii. 5. Gal. v. 24. For all, and all manner of Diabolonians that now are, or that at any time shall be found in Mansoul, shall not only lose their lands and liber- ties, but also their lives." Then said Mr Loth-to-stoop again, "But, Sir, may not my Wnyh tl ' '^^^ter and great lord, by letters, by passengers, by accidental opportunities, and the like, maintain, if he shall deliver up all unto thee, some kind of old friendship with Mansoul?" Jolm x. 8. Immanuel answered, " No, by no means; forasmuch as any such fellowship, friendship, intimacy, or acquaintance, in what way, sort, or mode soever maintained, will tend lo the corrupt- ing of Mansoul, the alienating of tlieir affections from me, and the endangering their peace witli my Father." Mr Loth-to-stoop yet added further, saying, "But, great Win h th' ^""' ^^^^^' "^y master hath many friends, and those that are dear to him in Mansoul, Rom. vi. 12, 13. may he not, if he depart from them, even of his bounty and good nature, bestow upon them, as he sees fit, some tokens of n 7' J f ' tl ^'^ ^o\e and kindness, tliat he had for them, to f/ /-■ f ^^^ ^^^ i\\?it Mansoul, when he is gone, may look .^ •^ upon such tokens of kindness once received from " ' their old friend, and remember him who was once their king, and the merry times that they sometimes en- joyed one with another while he and they lived in peace to- gether?" Then said Immanuel, "No; for if Mansoul come to be mine, I shall not admit of, nor consent that there should he the least scrap, shred, or dust of Diabolus left behind, as tokens or gifts bestowed upon any in Mansoul, thereby to call to remembrance the horrible communion that was betwixt them and him." "Well, sir, said Mr Loth-to-stoop, I have one thing more to Tl*- 7 ^j • propound, and tlien I am cot to the end of mv com- Mark this. ^ .^. ' ^. • „ r -r o *. . i" mission; 2 Kings i. 3, 6, 7. buppose tnat when my H 2 90 THE HOLY WAR. master is gone from Mansoul, any that yet shall live in the town, shall have such business of high concerns to do, that, if they be neglected, the party shall be undone: and suppose, Sir, that nobody can help, in that case, so well as my master and lord; may not now my master be sent for upon so urgent an occasion as this? Or if he may not be admitted into the town, may not he and the persons concerned meet in some of the vil- lages near Mansoul, and there lay their heads together, and there consult together?" This Avas the last of those ensnaring propositions that Mr „„ I ^ , . Loth-to-stoop had to propound to Immanuel All the propOSl- i i ir n- 4. TV 1 1 1 » T r T 1 . on beliulf ot his master Diabolus: but Imma- tions of LiOtn-to- , , , , ^ -^ r i • i c^t^u ^ • r ; 7r r Huel would not grant it: tor he said, 1 here stoop in behalf of , ^u- .* r n * • _,. ' , . / 7 can be no case, or thing, or matter lall out m JJiabolus rejected, j^j^^^^^,^ ^hen thy master shall be gone, that may not be solved by my Father, 1 Sam. xxviii. 15. Be- sides, it will be a gieat disparagement to my Father's wisdom and skill, to admit any from Mansoul to go out to Diabolus for advice, v/hen tliey are bid before, in every thing, by prayer and supplication, to let their requests be made known to my Father, 2 Kings i. 2, 3. Further, this, should it be granted, Mould be to grant that a door should be set o;)en for Diabolonians in Mnnsoul, to hatch and plot and bring to pass treasonable de- signs, to the grief of my Father and me, and to the utter des- truction of Mansoul."* When Mr Loth-to-stoop had heard this answer, he took his -. , ^ leave of Immanuel, and departed, savin'', that he Loth-to-stoop ,, J 4. 1 • . • *u' , ^ would carry word to his master concerning this " ' whole affair. So he departed, and came to Dia- bolus in Mansoul, and told him the whole of the matter; and how Immanuel would not admit, no not by any means, that he, • The proud heart of man is loth to stoop to that absolute and entire obedi- ence to Christ which he justly requires. There are many who would call themselves Christians on some of the conditions here proposed. They would resign half their hearts to Christ, and so serve two masters. Or, they would allow him to be titular lord, a lord in name, but not in authority. Others would serve Jesus, in (general, if permitted to enjoy the pleasures of sin oc- casiunaUij. Others would submit to become religious yet entertain some dar- ling lusts; or maintain correspondence and friendsliip with Satan; or take delight in the recollection of their pleasant sins. But all this partial and conf//?/o;ifl/ submission is rejected; Christ will have all the heart or none. To be only "almost a Christian" is to be no Christian at all. The autlior, wish- ing to impress these things on the mind of the reader, has repeatedly said in the margin— »»fl7-A: tfds. They do indeed deserve remark, and let every reader consider whether he is offering some of these conditions, or whether he is sajTiig " Take my whole heart, and let it be Forever closed to all but thee." BY JOHN BUNYAN. 91 >vhen lie was once gone out, should ever have any thing more *.o do either in, or with any that are of, the town of Mansoul. When Mansoul and Diaboius had heard this relation of things, they with one consent concluded to use their best endeavours to keep Immanuel out of Mansoul; and sent old Ill-pause, of whom you have heard before, to tell the Prince and his captains so. So the old gentleman came up to the top of Ear-gate, and .called to the camp for a hearing; who, Avhen they gave audience, ne said, "1 have in commandment from my high lord to bid you a u r. r 7 1 tell it to vour prince Immanuel, that Mausoul, A speech of old j ^. • ', • , ... , r n ^ lU-paiise to the and their king, are resolved to stand or fall to- gether, and that it is in vain for your prince to ^' think of ever having Mansoul in his hand, un- less he can take it by force." So some went and told Imma- nuel what old Ill-pause, a Diabolonian in Mansoul, had said. Then said the prince, "I must try the power of my sword, Eph. vi. 17. for I will not (for all the rebellions and repulses that Mansoul has made against lue) raise my siege and depart, but will assuredly take my Mansoul, and deliver it from her enemy. And with that he gave out a commandment, that Captain Boan- erges, Captain Conviction, Captain Judgment, and Captain Ex- .p, . r 1. ecution, should march forthwith up to Ear- ■n \. ^- *2;ate, with trumpets sounding, colours flying. Preparations j -^i ^ }■ c *i \. *.i K^ i r fi 7 ..7 and Avith shoutina: for the battle. Also he for the battle. u .i ^ o . • r-. ^ i i i • • t • •^ would that Captain Credence should jom him- self in with them: Immanuel moreover gave orders that Captain Good-Hope and Captain Charity should draw themselves up be- fore Eye-gate. He bid also that the rest of his captains and their men should place themselves to the best of their advantage against the enemy, round about the town; and all was done as he commanded. Then he bid that the Avord should be given forth, and the word was at that time Im?nanuel. Then was an alarm sounded, and the battering rams were played, and the slings whirled stones into the town amain; and thus the battle began. Now Diaboius himself managed the townsmen in the war, and that at every gate; wherefore their resistance was the more forcible, hellish, and offensive to Immanuel. Thus was the good prince engaged and entertained by Diaboius and Man- soul for several days together; and a sight worth seeing it was, to behold how the captains of Shaddai behaved themselves in the Avar, And first for Captain Boanerges (not to undervalue the rest,) „ , he made three most fierce assaults, one after ^^''^'^'J^''^'''^'' another, upon Ear-gate, to the shaking of the posts thereof. Captain Conviction also made 92 THE HOLY WAR. up as fast M'ith Boanerges as possibly lie could; and both dis- cerning that the gate began to yield, they commanded that the rams should still be played against it. Now Captain Convic- _ . . tion going up very near to the gate, was with Conviction ^^^^^ ^^^.^^ driven back, and received three ivounded. ^^.^^^^jg j,j j^jg mouth? and those that rode refor- V,«) '2"^^ «• mades (a) went about to encourage the captains. For the valour of the two captains made mention of before, the prince sent for them to his pavilion; and commanded that awhile they should rest themselves, and that with somewhat they should be refreshed. Care was also taken for Captain Conviction, that he should be healed of his wounds; the prince also gave them a chain of gold, and bid them yet be of good courage. Nor did Captain Good-hope nor Captain Charity come be- , . hind in this most desperate fight, for they too l^iotl-liope and ^^ i^gi^aved themselves at Eve-gate that they tjiariti, puiij i^ad almost broken it quite open. These had the man at ±.ye- ^^^^ ^ reward from their prince, as also had the ^ ' rest of the captains, because they did valiantly round about the town.* In this engagement, several of the officers of Diabolus were f^ . • n slain, and some of the townsmen wounded, for Laptain Boast- ^^^^^„ ^^iG officers there was one Captain mg slam. Boasting slain. This Boasting thought that nobody could have shaken the post of Ear-gate, nor have shaken the l>eart of Diabolus. Next to him there was one Captain Se- -, . „ cure slain; this Secure used to say, that the blind ^ , . ' ^' and lame in ^Slansoul were able to keep the gates of the town against Immanuel's army, 2 Sam. v. 6, This Captain Secure did Captain Conviction cleave down the head with a two-handed sword, when he himself received three wounds in the mouth. Besides, there was one Captain Bragman, a very desperate „ . _^ fellow, and he was captain over a band of those P J . ■^~ that threw fire-brands, arrows, and death; he also received, by tlie hand of Captain Good- hope at Eye-gate, a mortal wound in the breast. • The sotil of man is assaulted by the ear. Boanerges, a faithful preacher of the ^spel, boldly perseveres in declaring^ the truth of 'jod, seconded by Conviction; who is here said to be wounded; or, in other >.ords— tliat convic- tion wliich was occasioned by the word of God, is resisted and driven back by the reluctant sinner, yet unwilling to yield to its dictates. Hope and charity, those amiable graces, present themselves to the eye of the world in order to allure their aouls. BY JOHN BUNYAN. 93 There was moreover one Mr Feeling, but he was no captain, ^ -, J. but a great stickler to encourage Mansoul to re- ^^ '"•^ bellion; he received a wound in the eye by the hand '^^ ' of one of Boanerges' soldiers, and had by the captain himself been slain, but that he made a sudden retreat. But I never saw Will-be-wlll so daunted in all my life; he wn h 11 ^^^^ "°^ ^^^ ^^ ^° *^ ^^ ^^^^ wont; and some say - ' ' he also received a wound in the leg, and that some " * of the men in the prince's army had certainly seen him limp as he afterwards walked on the wall. I shall not give you a particular account of the names of the soldiers that were maimed, wounded, and slain: for when tliey saw that the posts of Ear-gate shook, and Eye-gate was well nigh-broken quite open; and also that their captains were slain; this took away the hearts of many of the Diabolonians, so that they fell also by the force of the shot that were sent by the golden slings into the midst of the town of Mansoul. J , Of the townsmen, there was one Love-no-good; ove-no-goo ^^ ^^^^ ^ townsman, but a Diabolonian; he also received his mortal wound in Mansoul, but he died not very soon. Mr Ill-pause also, who came along with Diabolus when at first he attempted the taking of Mansoul, received a grievous Til h wound in the head; some say that his brain-pan "^ , , was cracked; this I have taken notice of, that he was ■woimie . j^gygp ^f^pp |.|-^jg j.^jg jQ ^Jq ^^^^ mischief to Mansoul as he had done in times past. Also old Prejudice and Mr Any- thing fled.* Now when the battle was over, the prince commanded that _,. -,•. n yet once more the white flag should be set 1 lie -white Jiag ^^^^ Mount Gracious, in sight of the town hung out agam. ^^ Tyj^nsoul; to show that yet Iramanuel had grace for the wretched town of Mansoul. When Diabolus saw the white flag hung out again, and know- -p.- J 1 , ingthat it was not for him, but Mansoul, he cast in , his mind to pLty another prank, to wit, to see if new prank. , , ' ,•, . ,. '. ' , ^ Immanuel would raise his siege to be gone, upon promise of reformation. So he went down to the gate one * Success now begins to crown these efforts of the gospel ministry. The sin- ner no longer boasts of his fancied virtue, strength and goodness; sin is no more bragi(ci/ of, and gloried in; the word is now felt as well as heard; and even the stiilihorn ivill ofman begins to bend. These and other enemies of Christ are obliged to submit to the victorious weapons of his grace. In this state of things, the display of the white Hag, or pardoning mercy, is peculiar ly seasomble. 94 THE HOLY WAR. evening, a good -while after the sun was gone down, and called to speak with Jmmanuel; who presently came down to the gate, and Diabolus saith unto him: „. , "Forasmuch as thou raakest it appear by the -- •' , white flag, that thou art wholly given to peace and quiet; I thought meet to acquamt thee, that Ave are ready to accept thereof upon terms which thou mayest admit. " I know that thou art given to devotion, and that holiness pleases thee; yea, that thy great end in making a war upon Mansoul, is, that it may be an holy habitation. Well, draw off thy forces from the town, and 1 will bend Mansoul to thy bow. "First, I will lay down all acts of hostility against thee, and Avill be willing to become thy deputy; and Avill, as I have formerly been against thee, now serve thee in the town of Mansoul. And more particularl3\ T.. , , 7, " 1. I will persuade Mansoul to receive , -. ., thee for then lord; and I know that they Avill do , . ^ it sooner, when they shall understand that I am deputy, thy deputy. "2. I will show them wherein they have erred, and that transgression stands in the way to life. "3. I will show them the holy law unto -which they must confoi'm, even that which they have broken. "4. I will press upon them the necessity of a reformation, according to law. , ,,^ "5. And moreover, that none of these things a7id ivonld turn r -i t ic ,. .^ a - ^ may fail, I myself, at my own proper cost and J ' charge, will set up and maintain a sufficient ministry, besides lectures, in Mansoul. " G. Thou shalt receive, as a token of our subjection to thee, continually, year by year, Avhat tliou shalt think fit to lay and levy upon us, in token of such subjection."* Then said Immannel to him, "O full of deceit, how movea- ble are thy ways! How often hast thou changed ImmanneVf, a?is~cver to Diabolus. and re-changed, if so be thou mightest still keep possession of my Mansoul! though, as has been plainly declared before, I am the right heir there- * It is by no means uncommon for persons under severe couvictJons of sin, and awful fears of hell, 10 determine on reformal'.on, or mending their lives. This is agreeable to the first covenant, the terms of which are, " do, and live;" but not according to the new covenant of grace, which says — "believe and live." St Paul speaks with the most i)r)ignant grief of his countrymen the Jews, that, though they foUowc d after righteousness, they could not attain it, becatise they sought it by the works of the law, and that through ignorance of the righteousness of Christ, they went about to establish thur own righteotis- ness. See Romans 9th and 10th chapters. Such is the vain attempt of many tonvinced siiniers, who are willing to be reformed, but not to be justified and saved by grace. / BY JOHN BUNYAN. 95 of. Often hast thou made thy proposals already, nor is this last a whit better than they, 2 Cor. xi. 14. And failing to deceive when thou sliowedst thyself in thy black, thou hast now trans- formed thyself into an angel of light, and wouldst, to deceive, be now as a minister of righteousness. "But know thou, O Diabolus, that nothing must be regarded that thou canst propound, for nothing is done by thee but to de- r^. , , J ceive; thou neither has conscience to God, nor Diarcuis has no , I ». ^ r ai i i !i_ love to the town oi Mansoul: whence, then, conscience to i i i .u ..i • • \ ^ c • r i ^ , , should these thy saymgs arise, but from sinful God, nor love .-^ , , -A „ ?u 4. i- i. i -n ^ T^ , cratt and deceitr He that can list and will pro- to JMansonl. i u * i ^ i ^u ^ *i -.u i pound what he pleases, and that tlierewith he may destroy them that believe him, is to be abandoned, with all that he shall say. But if righteousness be such a beauty-spot in tliine eyes now, how is it that wickedness was so closely stuck to by thee before? But this by the bye. " Thou talkest now of a reformation in Mansoul, and that thou thyself, if 1 please, w ilt be at the head of that reformation; all the while knowing, that the greatest proficiency that man can make in the law, and the rigliteousness thereof, will amount to no more, for the taking away of the curse from Mansoul, than just nothing at all; for a law being broken by Mansoul, that had before, upon a supposition of the breach thereof, a curse pronounced against // Z-' ~ fl f ^^"^ ^^^ ^^ °^ God, can never, by his obeying ^, ^ ' -J, , the law, deliver himself therefrom. (To say that ivill do no ^, . r i. .. c ^- • i-i ^ i, 1 ^ J ■ r . nothing ot what a reiormation is like to be set "f ^ ' ' ,^ up in Mansoul when the devil is become the he hvobonnds *■ ^ i- • \ -t^i i ^^i .. iw. ^ \i 1 1^1 /< corrector ot vice). 1 hou knowest that all that for the health of ^, , . /. . ^, . .^ ■ .., ■ , ' , , -^ thou hast now said in this matter is nothinsrbut JMansonl. ., ,, . , . ^x, c . ■ guile and deceit; and as it was the nrst, so it is the last card that thou hast to play. Many there be that dis- cern thee, when thou showest them thy cloven foot; but in thy white, thy light, and in thy transformation, thou art seen but ot a few. But thou shalt not do thus with my Mansoul, O Diabo- lus, for I do still love my Mansoul. " Besides, I am not come to put Mansoul upon works to live thereby; should I do so, I should be like unto thee; bnt I am come, that by me, and by what I have and shall do for Mansoul, they may be reconciled to my fatlier, though by their sin they have provoked him to anger, and though by the law they cannot obtain mercy. "Tliou talkest of subjecting this town to good, when none de- sireth it at thy hands. I am sent by my father to possess it my- self, and to guide it, by the skilfulness of my hands, into such a 96 THE HOLY WAR. conformity to him as shall be pleasing in his sight. I will there- fore possess it myself; I will dispossess and cast thee out: 1 will set up mine own stanc'ard in the midst of them; I will also „„ ,,. ^govern them by new laws, new officers, new All thin s^s must '^ . , •' t -n n i . 9 Ttr raotnes, and new ways: yea, 1 will pull down . this town, and build it again, and it shall be as though it had not been, and it shall be tht glory of the whole universe."* When Diabolus heard this, and perceived that he was dis- ^. , , covered in all his deceits, he was confounded, and Jjiaboliis con- ^^ , ^^ , i ^ i • • i • ir .u J. , , utterly put to a nonplus: but havina: m nimselr the founded. ^ ^^ * ^. . . ^ , ,? • . i .u *' lountain or iniquity, rage, and malice against both Shaddai and his Son, and the beloved town of Mansoul, what doth he but strengthen himself what he could to give fresh battle to the noble prince Immanuel. So then, now we must ,- . ^ have another fight before the town of Mansoul is f ■■ f; If *''^^^"* Come up then to the mountains, you J J^s "that love to see military actions, and behold by both sides how the ftttiil blow is given; while one seeks to hold, and the other seeks to make himself master of, the famous town of Mansoul. Diabolus therefore withdrew himself from the walls to his fort that was in the heart of tbe town of Mansoul; Immanuel also re- turned to the camp; and both of them, after their divers ways, put themselves into a posture fit to give battle one to another, y^. , , , Diabolus, as filled with despair of retaining in his Diabolus des- , , ,, r ^ r nr I 1 J ^ . fill- hands the lamous town oi JNlansoul, resolved to ^, , •' , j^ do what mischief he could (if indeed he could do AlansouL and \ ^ ^, r.u • i .^ *i <■ ., J. any ) totlie army 01 the prmce, and to the taraous therefore con- ^ cat i r i i v ^ *u u ^ . '' ^ , ._ town of Mansoul; for alas! it was not the hap- trives to do it . ^ . .,, \ tat i ^i ^ a . . , . f. piness of the silly town of Mansoul that was de- , '' signed by Diabolus, but the utter ruin and over- throw tliereof, as now is enough in view, Mark xxvi. 27. Wherefore he commands his officers that they should then, when they saw they could hold the town no longer, do it * In this excellent answer of Immanuel we learn, that no self-righteous attempts tojustify the soul by its relbrmaliou only will be accepted. To per- suade convinced sinners to rest in tliis, to the neglect of Christ and his righ- teousness, is a dangerous artifice of the devil, who thus "transforms himself into an angel of light," 2 Cor. xi. 14. The sinner, having once broken the law, and thereby incurred " the curse of the law," Gal. iii, 10, can derive no help from the law; but must look to Christ the law fulfiller, for righteousness and reconciliation with God. A man may talk much of reformuig his life, and say a great deal about gooc? works, yet remain a subject of Satan's kingdom. We are not Christians till we are in Christ, by believing in him for salvation; and when we are so, we become new creatures: our state is new, being justified by grace; and our disposition is new also, being born again of the Spirit. BY JOHN BUNYAN. 97 what hiirin and mischief they could, rending and tearing men women, and children; for said he, we had better quite demolish the place, and leave it a ruinous heap, than that it should be an habitation for Immanuel.* Immanuel again, knowing that the next battle would issue in his being made master of the place, gave out a royal com- mandment to all his officers, high captains, and men of war, to be sure to show themselves men of war against Diabolus and all Diabolonians; but favourable, merciful, and meek to the old in- habitants of Mansoul. Bend therefore, said the noble prince, the hottest front of the battle against Diabolus and his men. So the day being come, the command was given, and the The battle join- P^''"<=^'s men stood bravely to their arms; nor ed, and "they fi^ht ^'^' ^^ \^^^ov^, bend their forces against Y.2X' on both sides ^^^"^ """^ Eye-gate. The word was then fiercelii. Mansoul is wok: so they made their as- sault upon the town. Diabolus also, as fast as he could, with the main of his power, made resistance from within, and his high lords and chief captains for a time fought very cruelly against the prince's army. But, after three or four notable charges by the prince and his Ear-^ate broke °°^^^ captains. Ear- gate was broken open, and oben ^^^ ^^^'^ ^"^ bolts, wherewith it was used to be * fast shut up against the prince, were broken into The pri7ice's a thousand pieces. Then did the prince's trum- standardsetup, P^^' ^^^"fl ^^^ captains shout, the town shake, and the slings ^""^ Diabolus retreat to his hold, t Well, are played still ^^en ^he pnnce's forces had broke open the at the castle. P^f ' himself came up, and did set up his throne in it; also he set his standard near it, upon a mount that his men had before cast up to place the mighty slings thereon. The mount was called Mount Hearwell; there there- fore the prince abode, to wit, hard by the going in at the gate. * When Satan can no longer maintain his dominion in the soul, he will en- deavour to disturb and distress it by temptations to despair, or to abominable vices, or by stirring up persecution against the struggling sinner; so, when a poor creature was approaching to Christ for cure — "as he was yet a coming the devil tlirew him down and tear him." Luke ix. 42. t Thus was the promise fulfilled, Isa. xxLx. 18. In that day the deaf shall hear the words of the book;" and xxx. 18, " the ears of the deaf shall be open- ed." It is a glorious event, when the soul is made sincerely willing to listen to the word of God, when it truly says " speak Lord, for thy servant hear- eth;" for the way is strait, as the author observes, from Ear-gate to the Re- corder's house, that is, to the conscience; and from thence to the Castle, that is, the heart. The importance of opening Ear-gate may be learned from that frequent expression in our Lord's discourses — " he that hath an ear to hear, let him hear." May God bestow the " hearing ear" upon every reader. 1 98 THE HOLY WAR. He commanded also that the golden slings shnuld yet be played upon the town, especially against the castle, because for shelter thither was Uiabolus retreated. Now from Ear-gate the street ■was strait, even to the Ivouse of him who was the recorder be- fore Diabolus took the town; and hard by his house stood the castle, wliich Diabolus for a long time had made his irksome den. The captains therefore quickly cleared the street by the use of their slings, so that way was made up to the heart of the town. Then the prince commanded that Captain Boanerges, Captain Conviction, and Captain Judgment, should forthwith ^ . march up the town to the ohl gentleman's gate. 1 hen did the captains in most Avarlike manner enter into the town of Mansoul, and, marching in with flying colours, mh J. they came up to the Recorder's house (and that the Recorder's ^^^ al^^^ost as strong as the castle.) Battenng- , rams they took also with them, to plant against the castle gates. When they were come to the house of Mr Conscience, they knocked and demanded entrance. Now the old gentleman, not knowing as yet fully their design, kept his gates shut all the time of this fight. Wherefore Boanerges rrii 1 , demanded entrance at his gates: and no man mak- They demand . , . . , -.i .i i j £• ^ ing answer, he gave it one stroke with the head of a ram, and this made the old gentleman shake, and his house tremble and totter. Then came Mr Recorder down to the gate, and as well as he could, with quivering lips, he asked who was there? Boanerges answered, "We are the captains and commanders of the great Shaddai, and of the bless- ed Immanuel his son, and we demand possession of your house for the use of our noble prince." And with that the battering- ram gave the gate another shake: this made the old gentleman tremble the more, yet durst he not but open the gate; then the Thp ST ' ^^"S's forces marched in, namely the three brave ^ ^ ' captains mentioned before. Now the recorder's house, was a place of much convenience for Immanuel, not only because it was near and fronted the castle, the den where now Diabolus was; for he was now afraid to come out They keep the mseives re- of his hold. As for Mr Recorder, the captains '""'""V/""/- " carried it very reservedly to him: as yet he knew servedly from ^,. r ^i ^ ^ • c ■, .l ^ the recorder ^"^"""S o* the great designs of Immanuel; so that he did not know what judgment to make, nor „. , ,, what would be the end of such thundering be- His house the . . * t. • i • i i i seat f~ ' ginnings.* it was noised in the town, how the '' ' recorder's house Avas possessed, his rooms taken • The conscience submits and trembles. When the soul listens to the threatening* of the holy law, conscience cannot but fear and quake, and till BY JOHN BUNYAN. 99 np, and his palace made the seat of war; and no sooner was it noised abroad, but they took the alarm as warmly, and gave it out to others of his friends; and as, you know, a little snow-ball loses nothing by rolling, so in little time the whole town was possessed, that they must expect nothing from the prince but destruction; and the ground of the business was this, the re- corder tembled, and the captains carried it strangely to him: so many came to see; but when they with their own eyes beheld the captains in the palace, and their battering-rams ever played at the castle-gates to beat them down, they were rivetted in their rr,i jc r n fears, and it made them as in amaze. And, The office of Con- t • i ^i c ^-u v. i i • . '" / , as I said, the man of the house would m- science, ~tvhen he n ^.i • r i * u- ' , crease all this; for whoever came to him, or discoursed with him, nothing would he talk of, tell them, or hear, but that death and destruction now attended Mansoul. "For (quoth the old gentleman) you are all of you sensible that we have all been traitors to that once despised, but now famously victorious and glorious Prince Immanuel; for he now, as you see, doth not only lie in close siege about us, but hath forced his entrance in at our gates: moreover, Diabolus flies before him; and he hath, as you behold, made of my house a garrison against the castle, where he is. I for ray part have transgressed greatly, and he that is clean it is well for him. But, I say, I have transgi'essed greatly, in keeping silence, when I should have spoken; and in perverting justice, whenl should have executed the same. True, I have suffered something at the hands of Dia- bolus, for taking part with the laws of King Shaddai, but that, alas! what will that do! Will that make compensation for the rebellions and treasons that I have done, and have suffered, without gain-saying, to be committed in the town of Mansoul? O I tremble to think whatwill be the end of this so dreadful and so direful a beginning!* Now while these brave captains were thus busy in the house ,Tti » of the old recorder. Captain Execution was as The brave ex- , . ,, ,^ r.u ^ • • *i ft/ V f r h D^sy in other parts ot the town, in securing tlie po so/ ap- ijack streets and the walls. He also hunted the tain iLx^cxLUon. ^^^^^ WiU-be-will, sorely, and suffered him not to rest in any corner. He pursued so hard, that he drove further enlightened with the knowledge of the gospel, and the gracious design of God by his gospel, can think and talk of nothing but "death and desti-uo- tion." * Conscience, when awakened, will open his mouth in humble confession of past offences, of rebellion again t God, lamenting especially his having kept silence when he ought to have spoken. 100 THE HOLY WAR. his men from him, and made him glad to thrust his head into a hole. Also this mighty warrior cut three of Lord Will-be-wilTs officers down to the ground; one was old Mr Prejudice, he that Old P rem- ''^*' ^'^ crown cracked in the mutiny: this man was dice slain' "^^'^^' ^7 my Lord Will-be-will, keeper of Ear-gate, and fell by the hand of Captain Execution. There was one Mr Backward-to-all-but-naught, and he also was one of the Lord Will-be-will's officers, and Mas the captain of the two guns that once were mounted on the top of Ear-gate; he also was cut down to the ground by the hands of Captain Execution. Be- sides these twothere was another, a third, and his name was Captain Treacherous, a vile man this was, but one that Will-be-will put a greatdeal of confidence in; but him also did this Captain Execution cut down to the ground with the rest. He also made a very great slaughter among my Lord Will-be-will's soldiers, killing many that were stout and sturdy, and wounding many that for Diabolus were nimble and active. But all these were Diabo- lonians; there was not a man, a native of Mansoul, hurt. Other feats of war were likewise performed by other of the Captain Good- ^^V^^'^^% as at Eye-gate, where Captain Good- hope slays Cab- ^°P^ ^"^ Captain Charity had a charge, was tain Blindfold ^"^^^^ execution done; for Captain Good-hope, '' ' with his own hands, slew one Captain Blind- fold, the keeper of that gate: this Blindfold was captain of a thousand men. and they were they that fought with mauls; he also pursued his men, slew many, and wounded more, and made the rest hide their heads in corners. There was also at that gate Mr Ill-pause, of whom you have heard before; he was an old man, and had a beard that reached and old El- ^"^^'^ ^° ^^^ girdle; the same was he that was bause orator to Diabolus: he did much mischief in the ^ ' town of Mansoul, and fell by the hands of Captain Good-hope. What shall I say? The Diabolonians in these days lay dead in every corner, though too many were yet alive in Mansoul.* * The work of conversion proceeds. The carnal ivill is pm-sued, and gets no rest. Prejudice, who once kept Ear-gate barred against Christ, and who was woundetf before, is now utterly slain. Jlversion to good, Tieachenj, Blind ness, and especially old Ill-pause, who was for deferring every thing good to an hereafter — all these were destroyed; but remember, all these were Diabo- lonians, not one native- power of the soul was injured. BY JOHN RUNYAX 101 CHAPTER VIIl. A conference of the principal inhabitants, who agree to petition the Prince for their lives. The Castle Gate broke open. Immanuel marches into Man- soul. Diabolus is made prisoner, and bound in chains. The inhabitants great- ly distressed; petition again and again. At length a free pardon is obtained and universal joy succeeds. NOW the old recorder, and my Lord Understanding, with sorje others of the chief of the town, to wit, such as knew they must stand or fall with the famous town of Mansoul, came to- rr,j 7 7^ erether upon a day, and, after consultation had, The old towns-? . ,, ^ i ^ ! .•»• i \ 7 lointly aarreed to draw up a petition, and send men meet and -^ ^ / , ^^^\,^^^i ^ c . it to Immanuel, now while he sat in the gate ot Mansoul. So they drew up their petition to ™, Immanuel, the contents whereof were these; e iv I p - jj 'pj^at they, the old inhuhitants of the deplorable tition, and are ^ r -*/ ^ c j ^l • • j J -^1 town of Mansoul, confessed their sin, and were ., sorry that they had offended his princely majesty, and prayed that he would spare their lives."* Unto this petition he gave no answer at all, and that troubled them yet so much the more. Now all this while the captains that were in the recorder's house were playing with the batter- ing-rams at the gates of the castle to beat them down. So after rp, .J . some time, labour, and travail, the gate of the , , ^ ^ castle that was called Impregnable was beaten broke open. i u i • ^ i i- ^ a ^ open, and broken into several splinters, and so a way was made to go into the hold in which Diabolus had hid himself. Then were tidings sent down to Eai^-gate, for Imma- nuel still abode there, to let him know that a way was made in at the gates of the castle of Mansoul. But O how the trumpets at the tidings sounded throughout the prince's camp, for that now the war was so near an end, and Mansoul itself of being set free ! t J. , Then the prince arose from the place where he , . ^ was, and took with him such of his men of war marches into f:^^ ^ r ..u j-.- i i_ i T, , , as were nttest lor the expedition, and marched up the streets of Mansoul to the old recorder's house. * No sooner does Christ come to a person by converting grace than he be- gins to pray. "Behold he prayeth!" was Christ's own remark concerning converted Saul, Acts ix. But the praying soul may fear for a time that the Lord does not hear. He may defer his answer, but the christian cannot pray in vain. t At length the Castle of the heart is taken. That heart )-ields to God which was before deemed impregnable^ and indeed was so to any other pow- er than that of invincible grace. Then indeed there is joy in heaven. 1 2 102 THE HOLY WAR. Now the priace himself was clad all in arinoui- of gold, and ^ , so he marched up the town, with his standard borne , before him; but he kept his countenance much re- thr h ^^^^^^ ^^^ the way as he went, so that the people j^ ^ J could not tell how to gather to themselves love or hatred by his looks. Now as he marched up the street, the townsfolk came out at every door to see, and could not but be taken with his person, and the glory thereof, but wondered at the reservedness of his countenance; for as yet he spake more to them by his actions and works, than he did by words or smiles. But alas poor Mansoul (as in such cases all „ . . are apt to do) interpreted the carriage of Imma- ^ 3. ^ it' nuel to them, as did Joseph's brethren his to them, ^ ,, even all the quite contrary way: tor, thought they, if Immanuel loved us, he would show it to us by ^ ' word and carriage; but none of these he does, therefore Immanuel hates us. Now if Immanuel hates us, Man- soul shall be slain, then Mansoul shall become a dunghill. They knew that they had transgressed his law, and that against him they had been in league with Diabolus his enemy. They also knew that Prince Immanuel knew all this; for they were convinced that he was an angel of God, to know all things that are done in the earth. And this made them think that their condition was miserable, and that the good prince would make them desolate.* And, thought they, what time so fit to do this in as now, •when he has the bridle of Mansoul in his hand? And thisltook special notice of, that the inhabitants, notwithstanding all this, could not, no, they could not, when they saw him march through the town, but cringe, bow, bend, and were ready to lick the dust off liis feet: they also wished a thousand times over, that he would become their prince and captain, and would become their protector. They would also talk one to another of the comeliness of his person, and how much for glory and valour he outstript the great ones of the world. But, poor hearts! as to themselves, their thoughts would change, and go upon all manner of extremes. Yea, through the working of them back- ward and forward, Mansoul became as a ball tossed, and as a rolling thing before a whirlwind. Now wlien he was come to the castle gates, he commanded * Jttsus Christ is truly glorious; the chief among ten thousand, and alto- gether lovely; but converted sinners do not always enjoy great comfort at first. Sense of sin, and fear of his resentment may keep them low: j'et they cannot but admire Immanuel, and heartily desire he msy be the lord of their hearw. The Giant Diabolus bound in chains. p. 103. IIIJillllllilllllllillllllllllllllllllllliillllliM BY JOHN BUNYAN. 103 Diabolus to appear, and to surrender himself He comes to the j^^^ j^j^ j^^^^^ ^^^ ^^ j^^^ l^^l^ ^^3 ^^^^ ^^^^^ castle and com- ^^ appear! How he stuck at it, how he shrunk! tnancls Diabo- jj^^ ^^ cringed! Yet now he came to the ius to surrender ^^,.^^^ Then Immanuel commanded, and famselj. ^^^^ ^^^^ Diabolus and bound him fast in chains, the better to reserve him to the judgment that he had appointed for him. But Diabolus stood up to intreat for himself, that Immanuel would not send him into the deep, but suffer him to depart out of Mansoul in peace. When Immanuel had taken him and bound him in chains, he . , .led him into the market-place, and there be- //e istakeii and ^^^^ Mansoul stripped him of his armour which boxmdm chains. ^^ ^^^^^^^ ^^ ^^,|, of before. This now was one of the acts of triumph of Immanuel over his enemy: and all the while the giant was stripping, the trumpets of the Golden Prince sounded amain; the captains also shouted, and the sol- diers sang for joy. Then was Mansoul called upon to behold Im- -_ , manuel's triumph over him in whom they had so Mansoidmust^^^^^ trusted, and of whom they had so much behold It. boasted in the days when he flattered them. Thus having made Diabolus naked in the eyes of Mansoul and before the commanders of the prince, in the next place he com- „ . , , mands that Diabolus should be bound with chains He IS bound ^^ ^^.^ ^j^^^.j^^. ...^eels, Eph. iv. Then leaving to his chariot ^^^^ ^^^.^^ forces, to wit. Captain Boanerges and •wheels. Captain Conviction, a guard for the castle gates, . that resistance might be made on his behalf The prmce rides ..^ that heretofore followed Diabolus should m triumph over ^^^e an attempt to possess it) he rode in tri- hirnm the sight ^^^-^ ^^^^ ^^^ ^^j^^ through the town of Man- 0/ Mansoul. ^^^^^ ^^^ ^^ ^^^ ^^ ^^^ before the gate called Eye-gate, to the plain were his camp lay. But you cannot think, unless you had been there (as I was) what a shout there was in Immanuel's camp, when they saw the tyrant bound by the hand of their noble prince, and tied to his chariot-wheels. And they said. He hath led captivity captive, ^, . and hath spoiled principalities and powers: Dia- Ihey smg. -^^^^^ jg subjected to the power of the sword, and made the object of all derision. Those also that rode reformades, and that came down to see ,„, » the battle, shouted with that greatness of voice, '"'y^^Z and sung with such melodious notes, that they caus- mades s joy. ^^ ^^^^ ^^^^ ^^^^^ • ^^ ^^^ highest orbs to opea 104 THE HOLY WAR. their -windows, put out their heads, and look down to see the cause of that glory, Luke xv. 7. 10. The townsmen also, so many of tliem as beheld this sight, »Tii /• were as it were astonished, while they looked be- JUayi'soul ^•^■•''^ ^^^ earth and the heavens. True, they could taken -with ^^^ ^^^^ what would be the issue of things as to them, Iminanuel ^^^ things being done in such excellent methods; and I cannot tell how, but things in the management of them seemed to cast a smile towards the town; so that their eyes, their heads, their hearts, and their minds, and all tliat they had, were taken and held while they observed Immanuel's order. So when the brave prince had finished this part of his triumph r,- /„7 * ^ * over Diabolus his foe, he turned him up in Uiabolus cast out. ^, • i ^ f i • j i , • the midst ot his contempt and shame, having given him a charge no more to be a possessor of Mansoul. Then went he from Tmmanuel, and out of the midst of his camp, to inherit the parched places in a salt land, seeking rest, but finding none. Matt. xii. 34.* Now Captain Boanerges and Captain Conviction were both of The carriage of ^^^^ ^^^^ °^ ^'^^'^' ^^^^ majesty; their faces 7? -n- ^ 1 ^^'^^'^ ^^^^ ^^^^ faces of lions, and their words y^ J ^ -"^ /-f • like the roaring of the seas; and they still (Japtam Convic- ^ i • -»r r. • •> v ex. .. -* 7 ^7 quartered in Mr Conscience's house, ot whom tion crushes the ^ ,. , i .• -.^-i \\. c .. . r -m^ mention was made betore. vV hen, therefore, 1 ' the high and mighty prince had thus far finish- ed his triumph over Diabolus, the townsmen had more leisure to view and behold the actions of their noble captains. But the captains carried it with that terror and dread in all they did (and you may be sure they had private instruc- tions so to do,) that they kept the town under continual heart- aching, and caused (in their apprehension) the Mell-being ol Mansoul for the future to stand in doubt befox-e them, so that for some considerable time they neither knew what rest, or ease, or peace, or hope meant. Nor did the prince himself as yet abide in the town of Man- rm ^ • 1 soul, but in his royal pavilion in the camp, Fhe prince coTmnands, i ' ^i • > .. > i • r *i ■> c o /,, ^^ . 'and in the midst ot his father's forces, bo ana the captains ^ ^. • * i o-. * o ^„-„i ^ f 1 fj 1 ■ f at a time convenient he sent special put the three due f ^^,^^^^.^ ^^ Captain Boanerges, to summons of Mansoul m -ward, j^j,^,,^,,^ „,;. whole of the townsmen, into the castle-yard, and then there, before their faces to take mj • When the soul submits to Jesus, Sat.in is bound; he shall not rule in tha hc^rt any more. Rebel he may, but not reij,Mi. He is a chained enemy, aim " God shall bruise Satau uuder our feet shortly." Now Satan is stripped of all that armour in which he trusted, and the Lord Jesus is evidently trium phant. O what a glorious season was that when he ascended up on high. BY JOHN BUNYAN. 105 Lord Understanding, Mr Conscience, and that notable une the Lord Will-be-will, and put them all three in ward, and that they should set a strong guard upon them there, until his pleasure concerning them was further known. Which orders, when the captains had put them in ex3cution, made no small addition to the fears of the town of Mansoul: for now, to their thinking, were their former fears of the ruin of Mansoul confirmed. Now what death they should die, and how long , they should be' in dying, was that which most Mansoul greatly p^.-pi^^ed their heads and hearts; yea, they distressed. ^^^^ afraid that Immanuel would command them all into the deep, the place that the prince Diabolus wa« afraid of; for they had deserved it. Also to die by the sword in the face of the town, and in the open way of disgrace, from the hand of so good and so holy a prince, that, too, troubled them sore: the town Avas also greatly troubled for .the men commit- ted to ward, for that they were their stay and their guide; and for that they believed, that if those men were cut off, their exe- cution would be but the beginning of the ruin of the town of Mansoul.* AVherefore what do they, but together with the men in prison, . draw up a petition to the prince, and sent it They send a peti- ^^ i^j^anuel by the hand of Mr Would-live. tion to Immamiel g^ j^^ ^^^^^^ ^^ ^ ^^^^^ ^^ ^^^ prince's quarters, by the handoj ^^^ presented the petition; the sum of which Mr Wood-Uve. ^^^s this: "Great and wonderful potentate, victor over Diabolus, and conqueror of the town of Mansoul: we, the miserable inhabitants of that most Avoful corporation, humbly beg that we may find favour in thy sight, and remember not against us our former transgressions, nor yet the sins of the chief of our town, but spare us according to the greatness of thy mercy, and let us not die", but live in thy sight; so shall we be willing to be thy servants, and, if thou shalt think fit, to gather our meat under thy table. Amen." So the petitioner went, as was said, with his petition to the „, prince; and the prince took it at his hand, They are answer- ^^^ ^^^^ ^.^ ^^^^^, ^^j^,^ ^jl^^^^^ T^j^i^ ^^jn ed with silence. afflicted the town of Mansoul; but yet con- leading captivity captive! Then the angels (here called retbrmades) rejoiced and shouted, and so we are assured they now do; for " There is joy in the presence of the angels of God over one sinner that repenteth." * It is no uncommon thing for convinced sinners, before they obtain clear views of the gospel, to remain under considerable terror and alarm. They feel themselves continually condemned by the faithful preaching of the word. The understanding, the conscience and the will muy be in a state of bondage, and the whole soul be terrified with f< ai-s of death and damnation. But all this will end well— will issue in fervent prayer and happy peace. 106 THE HOLY WAR. Siderini? that now they must either petition or die )tbr now tliey could not do any thnig else) therefore they consulted again, and sent anotiier petition, which Mas much after the form and me- thod of the former. When the petition was drawn up, by vhom should they send rpi ft t't' ^^ ^^^ ^^ next question; for they would not send • " it by him by whom they sent the first; (for they ^ ' thought that the prince had takea some oftence at the manner of his deportment before him) so they attempted to rpj f t V "^^^^ Captain Conviction their messenger with 1, t . "■. it; but he said, that he neither durst nor would by -whom to send V.. , i r . •. u . .1 • . petition Immanuel for traitors, nor be to the prince an advocate for rebels. Yet withal, said he, our prince is good, and you may adventure to send it by the hand of one of your town; provided he went with a rope about his head, and pleaded nothing but mercy. Well, they made, through fear, their delays as long as they could, and longer than delays were good; but fearing at last the danger of them, they thought, but with many a fainting in their minds, to send their petition by Mr Desires-awake; so they sent for Mr Desires-awake. Now he dwelt in a very mean cottage in Mansoul; and he came at his neighbours' request. So they told him Mliat they had done, and what they would do concerning petitioning, and that they desired of him that he would go therewith to the prince. Then said Mr Desires- awake, W^hy should not I do the best I can to save so famous a town as Mansoul from destruction? They therefore delivered Tj^^ J. .^ the petition to him, and told him how he must , ^ address himself to the prince, and wislied him ten ui ^i ^ ^- thousand good speeds. So he came to the prince's ivitlithe pcti- ... .1 £ i J 1 1 . , -.t. .. ^ pavilion, as the ni-«t, and asked to speak with his majesty; so word was carried to Immanuel, and the prince came out to the man. When IMr Desires-awake saw the prince, he fell flat with his face to the ground, and cried out, O that Mansoul might live before thee! and with that he presented the petition. The which when the prince had read, jr- ^ he turned away for a while, and wept; but, refraining . liimself, he turned again to the man (who all this while lay crying at his feet as at first,) and said to him, Go thy way to thy place, and I will consider of thy requests.* Now you may think that they of Mansoul that had sent him, * We must pray and pray again. We must pray in humility, confessing our desert ot punishment, as it were with ropes about our necks. The ptrti- tion is sent by Mr Desires-awake. The desires of an awakeiied soul are vented in prayer, and these move the coiupassioiuite heart of Jesus. BY JOHN BUNYAN. 107 •what with guilt, and what with feai', lest their petition should be rejected, could not but look with many a lonf^ing look, and that too with strange workings of heart, to see what would be- come of their petition. At last they saw their messenger com- jj^. t n I ^"^ t>ack-, so when he was come, they asked him . ., how he fared? what Iramarkuel said? and what anstver to them , ~ ^, .. i t> ^ i, ^ i i .1 *i * * /.• w*s become 01 the petition? But he told them that sent him. , , , , ■ , ^ • 1 1 1 ^ xl he would be silent till he came to the prison to my lord-mayor, my Lord Will-be-\vill, and Mr Recorder. So he went forwards towards the prison-house; where the men of Mansoul lay bound. But, O! what a multitude flocked after, to hear what the messenger said. So when he was come, and had showed himself at the gate of the prison, my lord-mayor himself looked as white as a clout, the recorder also quaked; but they asked, and said, Come, good sir, what did the great prince say to you? Then said Mr Desires-aAvake, When I came to my lord's pavilion, I called, and he came forth; so I fell pros- trate at his feet, and delivered to him my petition (for the great- ness of his person, and the glory of his countenance, would not suffer me to stand upon my legs). Now as he received the peti- tion, I cried, O that Mansoul might live before thee! So when for a while he had looked thereon, he turned about, and said to his servant, Go thy way to thy place again, and 1 will consider of thy requests. The mressenger added, moreover, and said. The prince to whom you sent me, is such a one for beauty and glory, that whoso sees him, must love and fear him: I for my part can do no less; but I know not what will be the end of these things. Mansoul con- ^^ ^'"^ answer they were all at a stand, both they }ounded at the »';' PJ*'son, and they that followed the messenger answer thither to hear the news; nor knew they what, or what manner of interpretation to put upon ai hat the prince had said. Now when the prison was cleared of the throng, the prisoners began to comment among themselves upon Im- manuel's words. My lord-mayor said, that the answer did not The prisoners' ^°°*^ '^^^^^ ^ rugged face; but Will-be-will said 2,.^J.^^^t n.hr... it betokeneth evil; and the recorder, that it was 'uascment upon ^ i 1 -»t , , , .. the prince's an- ^ ^^^senger of death. Now they that were lett, ^ and that stood behind, and so could not so well hear what the prisoners said, some of thein catched hold of one piece of a sentence, and some on a bit of nj,. . . ^ another; some took hold of what the messenger , ^ J / .^ 7 said, and some of the prisoners' judgment there- / . . ' on, so none had a right understanding of things; confusion iti , ' ^ . *? , , , ^^ =>, ' jj,'' . but you cannot imagine -what work these people made, and what confusion there was in Mansoul. 108 THE HOLY WAR. For presently they that had heard what was said flew about the town, one crying one thing, and another quite the contrary, and both were sure enough they told true, for they heard, they said, with their ears what was said, and therefore could not be deceived. One would say, "We must all be killed?" another •would say, " We -.nust all be saved ;" and a third would say, ** That the prince would not be concerned with jMausoul?" and a fourth, "• That the prisoners must be suddenly put to death:" and, as I said, every one stood to it, that he told his tale the Tightest, and that all others but he were out. W^herefore Maa- 6oul had now molestation upon molestation, nor could any man know on what to rest the sole of his foot; for one would go by now, and, as he went, if he heard his neighbour tell his tale, to be sure he would tell the quite contrary, and both would stand in it that he told the truth. Nay, some of them had got this Man 1 ' ^^^'^y ^y ^'^^ ^"^' " That the prince intended to put * ,, . Mansoul to the sword." And now it began to be " " '^' dark; wherefore poor Mansoul was in a sad per- plexity all that night, until the next morning.* But so far as I could gather by the best information I could get, all this hubbub came through the Avords that the recorder said, when he told them, that in his judgment the prince's answer rrri. * -11 * was a messenger of death. 'Twas this that fired What -will not ., . j .u ^ i »v r • Ui. • li* i ., , the town, and that began the fnght in Mansoul; ^ ' for Mansoul in former times used to count that Mr Recorder was a seer, that his sentence was equal to the best of oracles; and thus was Mansoul a terror to itself. And now they began to feel the effects of stubborn rebellion, and unlawful resistance against their prince. I say, now they began to feel the effects thereof by guilt and fear, that now had swallowed them up; and who more involved in the one, but they that were most in the other, to wit, the chief of the town of Man- soul ? ,„. , To be brief; when the fame of the fright was .n out of the town, and the prisoners had a little " ■^ ' recovered themselves, they take to themselves rp, . V, *//■ some heart, and think to petition the prince " ' again for life. So they drew up a third peti- tion, the contents whereof were these: "Prince Immanuel the Great, Lord of all worlds, and Master • How anxious the praying soul to know whether he shall succeed or not Perplexity ^^ad fear may greatly prevail for a season, till the truths of the fospel be clearly understood and cordially believed. But this state of fear iscovers what an evil and bitter thing it is to sin against God, Thus sin is embittered, and Christ rendered more precious. BY JOHN BUNYAN. 109 of mercy, we, thy poor, wretched, miserable, dying town of Mansoul, do confess unto thy great and glorious Majesty, that we have sinned against thy Father and Ihee; and are no more worthy to be called thy JMansoul, but rather to be cast into the pit. If tliou wilt slay us, we have deserved it. If thou wilt condemn us to the deep; we cannot but say thou art righteous. We cannot complain, whatever thou dost, or however thou ear- nest it towards us! But oh! let mercy reign, and let it be extend- ed to us! O let mercy take hold upon us, and free us from out transgressions, and we will sing of thy mercy, and of thy judg- ments! Amen." This petition, when drawn up, was designed to be sent to the Prayer attended^P''''^ ^\ ^^^ fi^'^^' ^"^ '^'^'^ ^^^^^^^ ^^^^ it, •with difficulty ^ "^^^ ^"^ question. Some said let him do •^ ^' it that went with the first; but others thought Old Good-deed »^"^ ^^^ '^ ^° ^^^*' ^"'^ ^^^^ because he sped no propounded a-? ^'^"er. Now there was an old man in the town, a fit berson to ^"^ ^"^ "^™^ ^^'^^ ^^^ Good-deed; a man that carry the peti- bare only the name, but had nothing of the nature f^Qjj^^ of the thing. Some were for sending him; but the recorder was by no means for that: for, said The old recorder ^^' we now stand in need of, and are pleading for opposes it, anj"'^''^>^' jy^'^'"^^"^'^' ^° '^"^^ our petition by a he is rejected. f"^" name, will seem to cross the petition itself, should we make Mr Good-deed our mes- senger, when our petition cries for mercy. Besides, quoth the old gentleman, should the prince now, as he receives the petition, ask him, and say, What is thy name? (and nobody knows but he will) and he should say. Old Good- deed; what think you would Immanuel say but this. Ay, is Old Good-deed yet alive in Mansoul? then let old Good-deed save vou from your distresses. And if he says so, I am sure we are lost, nor can a tliousand of old Good-deeds save Mansoul.* After the recorder had given in his reasons, why old Good- deed should not go with this petition to Immanuel, the rest of • Still the spirit of prayer prevails in Mansoul; for "men ought always to pray and not to faint." And it is observable how these petitions improve from time to time. How much more light and humility appear in the third petition than in the first. It was also wisely determined not to send Mr Good- deed with it, for this would contradict the prayer of the petition, which was for mercy, not reward; and yet how absurd is the conduct of some, whoseonly hope of mercy is on account of their good deeds; it is asense of our bad deeds, not our good ones, that will make us seek in earnest fcr mercy. If we plead good works, may not the Lord say— Let good works save them— WJiat need of my grace, for if righteousess can be obtained by the law, grace is frustrated, and the death of Christ a needless thing. K 110 THE HOLY WAR. the prisoners and cliiefs of Aransoul opposed it also; and so old Good-deed was laid aside, and llicy aj^reed to send jMr Desires- awake again. Accordingly they sent for him, and desired that he would a second time go with their petition to the prince; and he readily told them he Avould: but they bid him, that in any wise he should take heed that in no Mord or carriage he gave oflfence to the prince; for by doing so, for auglit we can tell, said they, you may bring Mansoul into utter destruction. Now Mr Desires-awake, when he saw that he must go on this Tir. r»^o,-„^o errand, besought that they would grant that Mr a-ivake ^-oes Wet-eyes might go with lum. 3\ow this Wet- • "^,,. .7 eyes was a near neighbour of Mr Desires, a poor *^7^„ ' irr * nian, a man of broken spirit, yet one that could takes one Wet- ' „ . . ^ ,^ ' / , , , .,, , . speak well to a petition. So thev granted that he eyes ivith him. \ , . . / , . ,,^, n , ^ ^ sliould go with lum. W hereiore they audress themselves to their business: Mr Desires put a rope upon his head, and Mr Wet-eyes went with his hands wringing together. Thus they went to the prince's pavilion.* Now when they Avent to petition this third time, they were not without thoughts that by often coming they might be a burden to the prince, wherefore when they were come to the door of his mi • ^7 pavilion, the^- first made their apology for them- /. ^j .^ ^^ selves, and for then* coming to trouble ImmaHuel for their com,' ' , , • i .i ^ .i ^ i -.i so often; and they said, that they came not hither ^ ^ ' to-day for that they delighted to hear themselves talk, but for that necessity "caused them to come to his Majesty; they could, they said, have no rest day nor night because of their transgressions against Shaddai and Immanuel his son. They also thought that some misbehaviour of Mr Desires-awake, the last time, might give some disgust to his Highness, and so caused that he returned from so merciful a prince empty, and without countenance. So when they had made this apology, ;Mr Desires- awake cast himself prostrate upon the ground, as at the first, at the feet of the mighty prince, saying. Oh that Mansoul might live before thee ! so he delivdtedhis i)etition. The prince, when he had read the petition, turned aside awhile as before; and, coming again to the place wlierc the petitioner lay on the ground, „,. _. he demanded what his name was, and of what esteem Jh fJ ~ 'tl '" ^''^ account of Mansoul, for that he, above all the . multitude of Mansoul, should be sent to him on such an errand? Then said the man to the prince, O let * Mr Wet-eyes, the son of Repentance, was a vcrj' proper man to accom- pany Mr Desires: our desires after mercy slioijld be joined with a broken and a contrite spirit, for to such persons will the Lord look with a benignant eye. I J\fr. Desires- a-wa he presenting the Peti- tion to Immamiel. p. 110. :!11MMMMM1 BY JOHN BUNYAN. lU not my lord be angry; and why inquires! tliou after the name of , . , such a dead dog as 1 am? Pass by, 1 pray thee, J}lr JJcsire s ^^^ ^_^^^ ^^^ ^^^.v^^ of whom I am, because there is, yree speech to ^^ ^^^^^ ^^^^^^ ^^^^^ knowest, so great a disproportion his prince. between me and thee. Why the townsman clmse to send me on this errand to my lord, is best known to tliem- selves; but it could not be for that they had thought I had favour with my lord. For my part, I am out of charity v.ith myself: who then should be in love with me? Yet live 1 would, and so would I that my townsmen should; and because both they and myself are guilty of great transgressions, therefore they have sent me, and I am come in their names to beg of my lord for mercy. Let it please thee therefore to incline to mercy; butask not what thy servants are. Then said the prince, And what is he that is become thy com- panion in this so weighty a matter? So INIr Desires told Im- manuel, that he was a poor neighbour of his, and one of his most intimate associates; and his name, said he, may it please your most excellent Majesty, is Wet-eyes, of the town of Man- soul. I know that there are many of that name that are naught: but I hope it will be no offence to my lord, that I have brought my poor neighbour with me. Then Mr Wet-eyes fell on his face to the ground; and made this apology for coming Avith his neighbour to his lord. " O my lord," quoth he, " what I am, I knov/ not myself, nor Mr Wet-eyes^ apo-'''^^}\':'' "^J "^™f ^^ feigned or true, es- logy for comini P^^'^^^-T ^^'^^"^ \ ^'^S'" to think what some ■JitlUds neighbour. J^^^'^^^^^' ''^ff\\ '^^' ^^"' "^""^ was given me, because Mr Itepentance Avas my lather. Good men ha^e had bad children, and the sincere do oftentimes beget hypocrites. My mother also called me by this name from my cradle; whether because of the moistness of my brain, or the softness of my heart, 1 cannot tell. 1 see dirt in my own tears, and filthiness in the bottom of my prayers.* But I pray thee, (and all this while the gentleman Avept,) that thou Avouldst not remember against us our transgressions, nor take offence at the unqualifiedness of thy servants, but mercifully pass by the sin of Mansoul, and refrain from the glorifying of thy grace no longer." ^ So at his bidding they arose, and both stood trembling before him, and he spake to them to this purpose: * Humble souls will acknowledge Avitligood Bishop Beveridge.tliat "their i-epentaiM;e needs to be repented of, their tears want washing, and the very waslnng of their tears needs still to be wasted over again with the blood of Uivir HcdecQier." 112 THE HOLY WAR. " Tlie town of Mansoul liath grievously I'ebelled against my rp, .\- , fatlier, in that lliey have rejected him from being ^ their king, and chose foi- themselves, for their captain, a liar, a murderer, and a runagate slave. rpj . . J For this Diabolus, your pretended prince, though of Ti' I 1 once so highly accounted of by you, made re- •' * hellion against my father and me, even in our palace and highest court there, thinking to l)ecome a prince and a king. But being timely discovered and apprehended, and for his wickedness bound in chains, and separated to the pit with those that were his companions, he offered himself to you, and you have received him. "Now this is, and for a long time hath been, an high affront to my father^ wherefore my father sent to you a powerful army to reduce you to your obedience. But you know how those men, their captains and their counsels, were esteemed of you, and Avhat they received at your hand. You rebelled against ■.,. J, them, you shut your gates upon them, you bid them , ,,. battle; you fought them, and fought for Diabolus against them. So they went to my father for more power; and I, with my men, am come to subdue you. But as you treated the servants, so you treated their lord: You stood up in hostile manner against me, you shut up your gates against me, you turned a deaf ear to me, and resisted as long as you could; but now 1 have made a conquest of you. Did you cry to me for mercy so long as you had hopes that you might prevail against me? But now I have taken the town, you cry; but why did y^ou not cry before, wlien the white flag of my mercy, the red flag of justice, and the black flag that threatened execution were set up to cite you to it? Now I have conquered your Diabolus, you come to me for favour; but why did you not help me against the mighty? Yet I will consider your petition, and will answer it so as will be for my glory. "Go, bid Captain Boanerges and Captain Conviction bring rr,j . . the prisoners out to me into the camp to-mor- 7 he prisoners ' , . r- * • i i ^ ^ n 11 . ■ . row; and say you to Captam Judgment and Cap- th 1^ '" ° ^"'" Execution, Stay in the castle, and take ■' ' good heed to yourselves that you keep all quiet in IMansoul until you shall hear further from me." And with that he turned himself from them, and went into his royal pavilion.* * This answer of Ininianuel was intended to deepen their sense of sin, and make them reflect with pain and sliame on tlieir Ibrmer transgressions, and of their contempt of mercy, until the Lord arrested them in tlieir mad career. Thus, the law enters that si-i may abound — that it may appear ( xce< ding^ sin- iul. ami re)ider th.' {jrace of God infniitilv i.reeioiis. BY JOHN BUXYAN. 113 So the petitioners, having received this answer from the prince, returned, as at the first, to go to their companions again. But they had not gone far but thoughts began to work in their minds, that no mercy as yet was intended by the prince to Mansoul: so they went to the place where the prisoners lay bound; but these workings of mind, about what would become of Mansoul, had such strong power over them, that by that they Avere come unto them that sent them, they were scarce able to deliver their message. But they came at length to the gates of the town, (now the townsmen were waiting with eagei-ness for their return,) where many met them, to know what answer was given to the petition. Then they cried out to those that were sent. What news from the prince? And what hath Immanuel said? But they said, that they must (as afore) go up to the prison, and there deliver their message. So away they went to the prison, with a multi- , ^ r • •^- tude(a) at their heels. Now when they were ^. ' y come to the gates of the prison, they told the ■^ ' first part of Immanuel's speech to the prisoners; to wit, how he reflected upon their disloyalty to his father and himself, and how they had chosen and closed with Diabolus and fought for him, hearkened to him, and been ruled by him: but had despised him and his men. This made the prisoners look __, pale; but the messenarers proceeded, and said. The messengers „ /, . . , " *i .. I u i i • . 77- j^i • He the prince said moreover, that yet he would m telhnsc their ., ^ .^. i • i , r^- 1 . fi consider j'our petition, and give such answer . . •' "^ " thereto as Avill stand with his srlory. And as- prisoners. ,, , i >t vir / ^ these words were spoken, Air \V et-eyes gave a great sigh. At this they were all of thein struck into their dumps, and could not tell what to say: fear also possessed them in marvellous manner, and death seemed to sit upon some of their eye-brows. Now there was in the company a notable mi T ' */V sharp-witted fellow, a man of mean estate, and " * his name was old Inquisitive; this man asked the petitioners if they had told out every whit of what Immanuel said. And they answered. Verily no. Then said Inquisitive, I thought so indeed. Pray wliat was it more that he said unto you? Then they paused awhile, but at last they brought out all, saying, The prince ordered us to bid Captain Boanerges and Captain Conviction bring the prisoners down to him to-morrow; and that Captain Judgment and Captain Execution should take charge of the castle and town till they should hear further from him. They said also, that when the prince had commanded K 2 n-i THE HOLY WAR. them so to tlo, he immediately turned his back upon them, and went into his roj'al pavilion. But oh! how this return, and especially this last clause of it, that the prisoners must go out to the prince into the camp, brake all their loins in pieces! Wherefore with one voice they set up a cry which reached up to the heavens. This done, each of the f \ fi . • thi'ee prepared himself to die (and the Recor- ^ ' ■ der(a) paid unto them. This was the thing that 1 feared) for they concluded, that to-morrow, by that the sun went down, they should he tumbled out of the world. The whole town also counted of no other, but that in their time and order they must all driidc of the same cup. Wherefore the town of Munsoul spent tliat night in mourning, and sackloth and ashes. The prisoners also, when the time was come to go down before the prince, dressed themselves in mourning attire, with ropes upon their heads. The whole town of Mansoul also showed themselves upon the wall, and clad in mourning weeds, if perhaps the prince with the sight thereof might be moved with compassion. But, Oh, how the busy-bodies, that were in jr • ,7 ,, the town of Mansoul, now concerned themselves! Vain thoughts. „„ , j A .. u .1 . . r ^ 1 hey ran here and there through the streets ot the town bj' companies, crying- out as they ran in tumultuous wise, one after one manner, and another the quite contrary, to the almost utter distraction of Mansoul.* Well, the time is come that the prisoners must go down to rp,, . . the camp, and appear before the prince. And , , i ^ • , thus was the manner 01 their romg down: Captaui had to trial. „ ^ . , j 1 r *i j Boanerges went with a guard betore tliem, and Captain Conviction came behind, and the prisoners went bound in chains in the midst; 30 I s.ay, the prisoners went in the midst, and the guard went w"ith flying colours behind and before, but the prisoners went witii drooping spirits. Or more particularly, thus: The prisoners went down all in mourning: they put ropes „ ^, upon themselves, they went on smiting them- F/ow theii iveiit. ' .1 • i \. i * 1 * ^ it» ^ selves on their hreasts, but durst not liit up their eyes to heaven. TliuS lliey went out at the gate of Man- soul till they came into the midst of the prince's army, the sight and glory of which greatly heightened their affliction. Nor could they now longer forbear but cry out aloud, O unhappy men; O wretched Mansoul! Their chains still mixing their • The Rfodly sorrow that now prevailml in Mansoul, was only a prelude to joy uiispt akable ainl full of glory, 'lliis sort of" wteping may endurt- for a nigiit, but joy coineth in the morning." These poor prisoners " went forth weeping, bearing precious seed, but were soon 10 return with joy, bringing th And they said, We can say nothing, Lord; thou art just, for we They condemn ^^^^ sinned. Then said the prince. And for what themselves. ^^^ ^j^^^^ ropes on your heads? The prisoners answered. The ropes(«) are to lead us withal to (a) Sins. ^i^g place of execution, if mercy be not pleasing in tliy sight, Prov. v. 22. So he further asked If all the men P in the town of Mansoul were in this confession, {b) Pp-wers of^^^ ^^^^,^ ^^^, ^j^^.j, answered. All tlie natives,(6) the soul. Lord:'but for the Diaboloniaus,(c) that came into (c) Corrup- ^^^. ^.^^^ ^xhen t:ie tyrant got possession of us, tions and lusts. ^^^ can say noUung for them. Then the prince commanded that an herald should be called; and that he should in the midst and throughout the camp of Im- raanuel proclaim, and that with the sound of trumpet, that the IK, THE HOLY WAR. prince, the son of Shaddai, had in his father's ^ victory pro- ^^^^^ ^^^ ^^^. j^.^ father's glory, gotten a perfect clannei . conquest and victory over Mansoul; and that the prisoners should follow him, and say Amen. So this was done as he had commanded.* And presently the music that was in the upper region soundied f ^ J ^^; melodiously. The captains that were in the Joy J or tie v.c- ^^^^^^ shouted, and the soldiers sung songs of '^* triumph to the prince, the colours waved in the wind, and great joy was every where, only it was wanting as yet in the hearts of the men of Mansoul. Then the prince called to the prisoners to come and stand again hefore him, and they came and stood trembling. And he .. / . ^^^^ ^'^'-^ t^^^"^> "^"''^ ^*"^' trespasses, and in- 1 hey are par- ; ^J^Jgs ^hat vou, with tlie Avhole town of Man- doned, w/ach is _^. . , ^ /.^^ ^._^ ^„ ,._^ „ ...„ , ^- ^, commanded to soul, have from time to time committed against J ■ J mv father and me, I have power and command- be proclaimed ^^^^^ ^^,^j^ ^^^ ^^^^^^^ ^^ forgive to the town of to-mo) 7 o^u III Mansoul, and do forgive you accordingly. And Mansoul. having so said, he gave \hem written in parch- ment, and sealed with seven seals, a large and general pardon, commanding my lord-mayor. Lord Will-be-will, and Mr Re- corder, to proclaim, and cause it to be proclaimed to-morrow, by that the sun is up, throughout the whole town of ^Mansoul. .^ Moreover, the prince stripped the prisoners of ra^s their mourning weeds, and gave them beauty for are a en ^^^gg^ ^^g qJi of joy for mournings and the garment from them. ^^ ^^^.^^ ^^^. ^j^^ ^^j^.j^ of heaviness, Isa. Ixi.^'s. Then he gave to each of the three, jewels of gold and pre- » cious stones: and took away their" ropes and put , . -^ chains of gold about their necks, and ear-rings in a era ion. ^]jg-,j, gj^pg Now the prisoners, Avhen tliey heard the gracious words of Prince Immanuel, and had beheld all that was done unto them, fainted almost quite away; for the grace, the benefit, the pardon, was sudden, glorious, and so big, that they * The questions proposed by Inimamiel were well forined to brin^out that clear and full confession of sin, and the desert of it, which appears lu the an- swers. Their lauguaije is that of truly humbled and penitent souls. Happy is the reader who makes their words really his own. This is the Lord's doing and a certain taken for good. Tliey who thus '• confess and forsake their sin shall find mercy," and in this case, God is faithful to his promise, and just to his Sou, to forgive all our sins. When the soul is brought into this state, the design of God in those convic- tions which seemed so terrific is answered, the work is done, and it may be truly said, tliat " Jesus hath obtained a jierfect eonc^uest and victory over Mansoul.'* Heaven and earth resound wiili joy on this event. BY JOHN BUNYAN. 117 •were not able, without staggering, to stand up under it. Yea, my Lord Will-be-will swooned out-right, but the prince stept to him, put his everlasting arms under him, embraced him, kissed him, and bid him be of good cheer, for all should be performed ac- cording to his word. He also kissed, embraced, and smiled upon the other two that were Will-be-will 's companions, saying. Take these as further tokens of my love, favour, and compassion to you; and 1 cliarge you that you Mr Recorder tell the town of Mansoul, what you have heard and seen. Then were their fetters broken to pieces before their faces, mi • -i, J^nd cast into the air, and their steps were enlarged 1 heir PUllt. , ^, ^, ', r 11 ..L r . r 1 • •^ under them. 1 hen they tell at the leet of the prince, kissed them, and wetted them with tears; they also cried out with a mighty strong voice, saying, " Blessed be the glory of the Lord from this place!" So they were bid rise up, and go to the rni ^ ^ f town and tell Mansoul what the prince had t 1 -fi" done. He commanded also, that one with pipe ... J ^ J and tabor should go and play before them all t)ipe and tabor. ^, • ^ .t . c in i t-u ^ the way into the town of Mansoul. Then was fulfilled what they never looked for, and they were made to r hf •>' r possess what they never dreamt of.* The prince J i' also called for the noble Captain Credence, and , P commanded that he and some of his officers should march before the noblemen of Mansoul, with fly- TJ7-, r -^1 J ing colours into the town. He gave also unto . J "^ ^^ Captain Credence a charge, that about the time pardon meet to- ^, ^ ^, „ , j .i i i • fi • 1 . that the Kecorder read the general pardon in 1 '^ J' 7 the town of Mansoul, that at that very time he and execution de- i,. .^, n- , t^-.t^ ^^ , , should with flying colours march in at Eye- S J gate, with his ten tliousand at his feet; and that he should so go until he came by the high street of the town, up to the caslle-gates; and that himself should take possession thereof against his Lord came thither. He commanded moreover, that he should bid Captain Judgment and Captain Execution leave the strong-hold to him, and withdraw from Mansoul, and return into the camp with speed unto the prince. * What a change is effected! " When the Lord turned again the captivity of Zion, we were like them that d.eam. Then was our mouth filled with laughter, and our tongue with singing; then said they among the heathen, the Lord hath done great things for them. The Lord hath done great things for us, wherefore we are glad." «' Who is like unto thee, pardoning iniquity, transgression, and sin?" "Blessed is he whose transgression is forgiven, whuse sin is covered. Blessed is the man unto whom the Lord imputeth not iniquity; blessed is the man unto whom God imputeth righteousness without works." Rom. iv. 6. il8 THE HOLY WAR. And now was the town of Mansoul also delivered from the terror of the first four caotains and their men.* CHAPTER IX. The liberated prisoners return to Mansoul, where they are received with the utmost demoiistrauons of joy. At the request of the inhabitants Iniinan- uel consents to reside in the town. He makes a public triumphal entry. The town is new modelled, and the image of Shaddai erected. WELL, I told you before how the prisoners were entertained by the noble prince Immanviel, and how they beliaved themselves before him, and how he sent them away to their home wilh pipe and tabor going before them. And now you must think that those of the town, that had all this while waited to hear of their „, ^^r death, could notbut be exercised with sad- The town of ^Man- - • i i vi *i \ ^ ..u ,. • ^ a ... j' ness or mind, and with thoughts that pricked soul in suspense ^.j,^ thorns. Nor could their thoughts be concerning the fate , ^ ^ • ^ ^i • i 1 1 ti ffi J ■ kept to any one point ; the wind blew them oj tlie prisoners. ^^^ ^^^.^ ^^,j^.^^ ^^ ^^^^^^ uncertainties, yea, their hearts jvere like a balance that had been disquieted with a shaking hand. But at last, as they, with many a long look, looked over the wall of Mansoul, they thought they saw some return to the town ; and thouglit again, who should they be too, who should they be ? At last they discerned that they were the prisoners : but can you imagine how their hearts were surprised with wonder, especially when they perceived also in what equipage, and with _ what honour they were sent home ! They went down ^^^^^}S^ to tiie camp in black, but they came back to the town altera ion. j^^ -wiiite; they went down to the camp in ropes, they came in chains of gold ; they went down to the camp with feet in fetters, but came back witli their steps enlarged under them; they went to the camp looking for death, but came back from thence with assurance of life; they went down to the camp with heavy hearts, but came back with pipe and tabor playing before . them. As soon as they came to Eve-gate, 1 he prisoners re- ^^^^ ^^^^^^, ^^^ tottering town of ^Lmsoul ad- turn to ±.ije-gate ^.^^^^^^,^^ ^^ ^^^.^ ^ gl,out . ^^^^ ^i^g^ g^ve such and are received ^ ^^^^^^ ^^ ^^^^^^^ ^j^^ captains in the prince's ■with a shout. .^^,^^^^^ ^^^^ ^^ ^j^^ g^^^j thereof. Alas for * " There is no condemnation to them that are in Christ Jesus." The four csiptains no longer denounce the wrath of God : the end of their ministry is accomplished ; the town is therefore relieved from the terror that tluir awful speeches occasioned, or as it is expressed in the margin "when faith and pardon meet together, judgment and execution depart from tlie heait." BY JOHN BUNYAN. 119 them, poor hearts! who could blame them?* since their dead friends were come to life again; for it was to them as life from the dead, to see the ancients of the town of Mansoul sliinc in such splendour. They looked for notliing but the axe and the block; but behold joy and gladness, comfort and consolation, and such melodious notes attending them, that was sufficient to make a sick man well, Isa. xxxiii. 24. So when they came \ip, they saluted each other: Welcome, welcome, and blessed be he that spared you! They added also. We see it is well Avith you; but how must it go with the town of Mansoul? And will it go well with the town of Mansoul ? said they. Then answered them the Recorder and my Lord-mayor: Oh! tidings! glad tidings! good tidings of good, and of great joy to poor Mansoul ! Tlien they gave another shout that made the earth ring again. After this, they inquired yet more particularly how things went in the camp, and what message they liad from Immanuel to the town. So they told them all passages that had happened to them at the camp, and every thing tliat the prince did to them. This made Man- soul wonder at the wisdom and grace of the prince Immanuel: then they told them what they had received at his hands for the whole town of Mansoul, and the Recorder delivered it in these O the joy> par- '^^^^^- " Pardon, pardon for Mansoul; and this don for sin. ^'^^^^ Mansoul knoAv to-morrow. " Then he commanded, and they went and summoned Man- soul to meet together in the market-place to-morrow, there to hear their general pardon read. ^ But who can think what a turn, what a change, what an altera- tion this hint of things made in the countenance of the town of Mansoul! No man of Mansoul could sleep that night for joy; iu every house there was joy and music, singing and making merry: telling and hearing of Immanuel's happiness, was then all that Mansoul had to do: and this was the burden of all their Town-talk of the ^''"»' ^^ ™°''^ °^ ^'"^^ ^^ ^'^^ ^'i^'^S of t'^e sun! kino-'s mercy "^^^"^ ^^ *'^'^ ^° morrow ! Who thought yester- ^ ^' day, one v/ould say, that this day would have been such a day to us! And who thought, that saw our prisoners go down in irons, tliat they should have returned in chains of gold ! Yea, they that judged themselves, as they went to be judged of their judge, were by his mouth acquitted; not * Who, indeed, can blame the holy joy of pardoned souls. When the Phi- hpian jailor btlievt-d "he rejoiced with all his house;" and when Samaria re- ceived the gospel, " there was great joy in that city." The author refers to Isa. xxxin. 24. "The inhabitants shall not say I am sick; the people that dwell therein shall be forgiven their iniquity:"~as if nothing could be com- plained of, if pardon be obtained. 120 THE HOLY WAR. for that they -were innocent, but of the prince's mercy, and sent „ , c T . home Aviih pine and tubor. But is this t!ie And of his son : c • > -n .i r ^ J common custom of princes!' Do thev use to sliow such kind ol favours to traitors' No! this is only peculiar to Shaddai, and unto Inimanuel liis son,* Now morninr;^ drew on apace; wherefore the Lortl-mayor, the lord Will-be-will, and Mr Recorder, came down to the market- place, at the time that the prince had appointed, where the town- folk were waiting for them : and when they came, they came in that attire and in that glory which tlie prince had j)Ut them into the day before, and the street was 'lightened with their glory: so the Mayor, Recorder, and my lord Will-be-will, drew down to Mouth-gate, which was at the lower end of the m;n'ket-place, because that of old time was the place where they used to read public matters: thither therefore they came in tlieir robes, and their tabor went before them. Now the eagerness of the peo- ple to know the full matter was great. Then the Recorder stood up upon his feet, and, first beckon- rrii r J"? with his hand for silence, he read out with Fhe manner of f , . . , t, ^ i i .. , '' a loud voice the pardon. But when he came to . , ^ these words, "The Lord, the Lord God is pardon. -c ^ a ■ i • • • . ^ *^ raercituland gracious, pardoning iniquity, trans- gressions, and sins;" and to them, "all manner of sin and blas- phemy shall be forgiven," &c. Exod. xxxiv. Mark iii. they could not forbear leaping for joy: for this you must know, that there was conjoined herewith every man's name in Mansoul, also the seals of the pardon made a brave show.f When the Recorder had made an end of reading the pardon, ZT .1 ^ J the townsmen ran upon the walls of the town, Ifoit) they tread , , . r • i i, • ,.1 1 fh fi h leaped thereon tor joy, and bowing themselves -' *'' ' seven times with their faces towards Imraan- uel's pavilion shouted aloud for joy, and said, "Let Immanuel live for ever!" Then order was given to the young men in Mansoul, that * Pardoned sinners will ever n:^gnify the exceeding riches of divine grace; It cannot but appear marvellous beyond expression: in vain the labouring soul attempts to measure the breadth, the length, the depth, and the height of the love ot Christ, it surpasses knowledge. "Is this the manner of man, O LordI" and what more can we say? t Believers are said to be "sealed to the day of i-edemption," — "sealed with the Holy Spirit;" the Spirit is himself the seal. "God's sealing of be- hevers (saith Dr Owen) is his gracious communication of the Holy Ghost unto them, so to act his divine power in them, as to enable them unto all the duties of their holy calling, evidencing them to be accepted with him, both to themselves and others, and asserting their preservation to eternal salvation. The effects of this sealing, are, gracious operations of the Spirit in and upon b litvirs; but the sealing itself is, the communication of the Spi- rit unto ihciu." BY JOHN BUNYAN. 121 ^ . „ , they should rin? (.he bells for joy; so the Livery and -warm ^^,j^ ^^^^^ ^^^^ ^^^^^^^ ^^^^^ ^^^ ^^^^ ^^^j^ thou^-hts. played in every house in Mansoul. When the prince had sent home the three prisoners of Man- . f soul with joy, and pipe and tabor, he command- ilie carnage oj ^^^ j^.^ captains, with all the field officers and the camp. soldiers, throughout his army, to be ready on the morning that the Recorder should read the pardon in Man- soul, to do his further pleasure. So the morning, as I have showed, being come, just as the Recorder had made an end of reading the pardon, Immanuel commanded that all the trumpets in the camp should sound, that the colours should be displayed, half of them upon Mount Gracious, and half of them upon Mount Justice. He commanded also, that all the captains „ . , .,, should show themselves in their complete har- ±aith 701(1 not ^^^^^ ^^^^ ^j^^^. ^j^^ soldiers should shout for joy. Oe silent -cvhen ^^^^ ^^.^^ Captain Credence, though in the castle, jyiansoul IS ^.^^^^ ^^ ^^^^^ ^ ^^^^,^ ^^^^ j^^ ^^,^^ ^^^^ ^^p ^^ ^j^^ saved. ^^^^^ showed himself Avith the sound of trumpet to Mansoul, and i;o the prince's camp. Thus have I shown you the manner and way that Immanuel took to recover the town of Mansoul from under the hand and power of the tyrant Diabolus. Now when the prince had completed these outward ceremonies _ . of his jov, he again commanded that his captains 1 he prince clis- ^^^ soldiers should show unto Mansoul some { F ^"^/''''''^f feats of war. So they presently addressed before Mansoul. ^^^^^^^^.^^ ^^ tj^jg ^o^^. gut oh! with what agility, nimbleness, dexterity, and bravery, did these military men discover their skill in feats of war to the now gazing town of Mansoul ! They marched, they countermarched, they opened to the right and left, they divided and subdivided, they closed, they wheeled, made good their front and rear with their right and left wings, and twenty things more, with that aptness, and then were all as they wei-e again, that they took, yea They are ra- ^.j^^jshed, the hearts that were in Mansoul to be- vishedatthe ^^^^ j^ ^^^ ^^j^ ^^ ^^j^^ ^^^ handling of their sig- 't oJ them. ^^^^^^ ^]^g managing of their weapons of war, were mai'vellous taking to Mansoul and me.* When this action was over, the whole town of Mansoul came out as one man to the prince in the camp, to praise him, and * "The prince displays his fjraces;"— they are shown the use cf tliem in that warfare which must now begin; Faith, or Credence, shows himself from the cast\e, the heart, where he has now taken his residence, that Christ may dwell in the heart by faith. L 122 THE HOLY WAR. thank him for his abundant favour, and to beg that it would please his Grace to come unto Mansoul with his men, and there to take up their quarters for ever. And lliis they did in the ™, , _., ^ most humble manner, bowins; themselves seven They be !{ that ^. . ^, ,,'^ ,? ^m -it ^, , . ^ J times to the s-rountl betore him. 1 hen said he, the prince and ,, . ,, P , ,50^1^ • i , . -^ , , " All peace be to you:" So the town came niffh, , „ .,, and touched wiih the hand the top of his ^-olden dwell -vith ^ , , •! /-iui ^i ^ .1 -I ^, J. scei)tre; and thev said, Oh! that tlie prince Im- i/teni for ever. 1 -.i 1 • ' .^ • ^ c 11 •' manuel, with Ins captains and men ot war, would dwell in ]Mansoul forever; and that his battering rams and slings mightbelodgedinher, fortlieiise and serviceof the prince, and for the help and strength of Mansoul ! for, said they, we have room for thee, we have room for thy men, we have also room for thy weapons of war, and a place to make a magazine for thy carriages. Do it, Im- manuel, and thou shalt be king and captain in jNIansoul for ever: c 7777 ^'ea, govern thou also according to all the desire Say and hold cA ^ 1 i .1 1 • ^ ."1 ^, , of Ihy soul, and make thou governors and princes to tt, JlajisojiL 1 ^u f 4i 4. • ] r J ' under thee 01 thy captains and men ot war, and we will become thy servants, and thy laws shall be our direction. They added moreover and prayed his Majesty to consider thereof; for, said they, if now.^ after all this grace bestowed upon us thy miserable town of Mansoul, thou sliouklst withdraw, thou and thy captains from us, the town of Mansoul will die. Yea said they, our blessed Immanuel, if thou sliouldst depart from us now, after thou hast done so much good for us, and showed so much mercy unto us, what will follow, but that our joy will be as if it had not been; and our enemies will a second time come upon us with more rage than at the first? Wherefore we beseech thee, O thou the desire of our eyes, and the strength and life of our poor town, accept of this motion that now we have made unto our Lord, and come and dwell in the midst of us, and let us be thy people. Besides, Lord, we do not know but —,, . /. thatto thisday manv Diabolonians mav be vet lurk- Their fears. . • ,, . c\t i 1 *\ ' -n u * •' ing in the town ot Mansoul; and they will betray us, when thou shalt leave us, into the hands of Diabolus again; and who knows what designs, plots, and contrivances, have pass- ed betwixt them about these things already? Loth we are to fall again into his horrible hands. Wlierefore let it please thee to accept of our palace for thy place of i*esidence, and of the houses of the best men in our town for the reception of thy soldiers, and their furniture.* * Converted souls will most sincerely and earnestly desire the constant re- sidence of Christ with them as their king' and captain. This is always the lanp'ua^e of first love; but let the caution in the margin be noticed, "Say, and hold to It, Mansoul." Happy are they who continue 111 this g'ood mind all theis days. But the sequel of the story will show how changeable a creature is m&n. BY JOHN BUNYAN. 123 , Then said the prince, if I come to your town, /"^"ice s ^^.jjj y^^ suffer me further to prosecute that which gj/i-s 10. 1 jg j^^ j^^. jjgjjj.j. acyj^iiist mine, enemies and your's.' »/ lansoii . y^^^ ^^jjj ^.^^^ j^^j^^ ^^^ j^^ sucli undertakings? They answered, We know not what we shall do; we did not „ . think once that we sliould have been sucli traitors Iheir ansTi t, 1 haste to the ffreen trees, and to the meadows, .. n T . ^ to e;atlier boughs and flowers, therewith to ration for his re- . . ^ ■ , . ' . ... •' strew the streets against tlieir prince the son ^ ' of Shaddai should come; they also made garlands and other fine works, to betoken how joyful they were and should be to receive the»¥ Immanucl into IMansoul; yea, they strewed the street quite from Eye-gate to tlie Castle-gate, the place where the ])riiice should be. They also prepared for his coming what music the tOM-n of Mansoul could aflFord, tliat they miglit play before him to the place of his habitation. So at the time appointed he makes his approach to Alansoul, and the gates were set open for him; there also the ancients and elders of Mansoul met him, to salute him witli a thousand welcomes. Then he arose and entered Mansoul, he and all his servants. The elders of Mansoul also went dancingbefore him, „ / , y7 till he -jame to the castle-gatcs. And this Avas ja€ €llt(^VS tilC ,, (» . • • ^l • . 1 1 11. f i/T manner oi Ins going up tliither: lie was clad in , •' J , his golden armour, he rode in his roval chariot, the SOUL and hoiv. . ® ^ i j u *. i • *i ' i trumyjets sounded about lum, the colours were displayed, his ten thousands went up at his feet, and the elders of Mansoul danced before him. And now wei-e the walls of the famous town of Mansoul filled with the tramplings of the inhabi- tants thereof, who went up thither to view tlie approach of the blessed prince and his royal array. Also, tlie casements, windows, balconies, and tops of tl:e houses, were all now filled with persons of all sorts, to behold how their town was to be filled with good. Now when he was come so far into the town as the Recorder's house, he commanded that one should go to Captain Credence, to know whether the castle of Mansoul was prepared to enter- tain his royal presence (for the preparation of that was left to that captain) and word was brought that it was, Acts xv. 9. Then was Captain Credence commanded also to come forth with his power to mict the prince; m Iiich was done as he had com- manded, and he conducted him into the castle, Eph. iii. 17. This done, the prince that night lodged in tlie castle A\ith his captains and men of war, to tlie joy of the town of Mansoul. f • Well may the soul i-ejoice that Jesus consents and promises to come and dwell within. "If any man love me, he will keep my words, and my Father will love him, and we "will eomtj unto him, and make eur abode with him." John xiv. 2.3. t Captain Credijiec was to pi-epare the castle for Inimaiiuel, ins(U,ipture words— "purifying tlutr heart I)y faith.'' Acts xv. V>. Prince ImmanueVs triumphal Entry into the town of Mansoul. p. 124. pj^M^i^fflil^itilllllllliM BY JOHN BUNYAX. 125 Now the next care of the townsfolk was how the captains and rr,j ^ soldiers of the prince's army should be qnartcr- The townsmen , ,, ^ , . ^ ., , • , „ ed amons: them; and the care was, not how they covet ivho snail , , , , ... ,, . , , - ^, , ^ , ,, 7 J. r^i should sliitt their liands or them, but how they have most of the , ,, ^n ^v. • u -^i ..i r- , ,. , ; should nil then* houses with thera: lor every soldiers oe'oiiiy- • ^v i ^ ^ .\. \. .. c ■• , ., , ■ man in .Mansoul now had that esteem ot Im- ms' to the prince. i i i • ^i ^ .• • • i .1 ■^ ^ manuel and his men, that nottung grieved them more, than because they were not eiilarged enough, every one of them, to receive the whole army of the prince; yea, they counted ittheir glory tobe waiting upon them, and would in those tlaysrun at their bidding like lacqueys. At last they came to this result: TT ^1 !• That Captain Innocencv should quarter at Hotv they were a/t -n , ' ^ Mr Reason's. 2. That Captain Patience should quarter at Mr quartered in -Ij jJ Mind's. This Mr Mind was formerly the lord Will-be-will's clerk in the time of the rebellion. 3. It was oj-dered that Captain Charity should quarter in Mr Affection's house. 4. That Captain Good-hope should quairter at my lord- mayor's. Now for the house of the Recorder, himself desired, because his house Avas next to the castle, and because from him it was ordered by the prince, that, if need be, the alarm should be given to Mansoul: it was, I say, desired by him that Captain Boanerges and Captain Conviction should take up their quarters with him, even they and all their men. 5. As for Captain Judgment and Captain Execution, my lord Will-1 e-will took them and their men to him, because he was to rult under the prince for the good of the town of Mansoul now, £ i he had done before under the tyrant Diabolus for the hurt and damage thereof. Rom. vi. 19. Eph. iii. 17. 6. And throughout the rest of the town were quartered the rest of Immanuel foi-ces; but Captain Credence, with his men, abode still in the castle. So the prince, his captains, and his soldiers, were lodged in the town of Mansoul.* Now the ancients and elders of the town of Mansoul thought «*., 7 • jj 7 that they never should have enough of the Jnan&oul inflamed . , ... 1 • • , • . J , •, . • prince Immanuel; his person, his actions, his T 7 words, and behaviour, were so nleasinsr, so immanuel. , •, . ' , • , , . , ^,t'i x- taking, so desirable to thera. VVheretore they prayed him, that though the castle of Mansoul was his place ot residence (and they desired t^at he miglit dwell there for ever) yet that he would often visit the streets, houses, and peo- * Much judgment is displayed in this distribution of the soldiers, particu- larly in quartering^ Boanerges and Conviction in the house of Conscience. L 2 126 THE HOLY WAR. pie of Mansoul; for, said they, dread sovereign! thy presence, thy looks, thy smiles, thy words, are the life, strength, and sinews of the town of Mansoul. Besides this, they craved that they might have, without diffi- culty or interruption, continual access unto him; so for that TJ pv hn f> nr ^^^T purpose he commanded that the gates should cess unto hiin ^^^"'' ^^"^^^ *^''^^ ^'^^^' m\^\\X. there see the man- ner of his doings, the fortifications of the place, and the royal mansion house of the prince. rp, J When he spake, they ali stopped their mouths, and ri.- gave audience: and when he talked, it was their de- of rum. f • 1 4. • •.. / 1 • • 1 • • •^ light to imitate hira in his goings. Now upon a time Immanucl made a feast for the town of Mansoul; and upon the feasting day, the townsfolk were come to the castle to partake of his banquet. And he feasted them with all manner of outlandish food; food that grew not in the fields of Mansoul, nor in all the whole kingdom of Universe, It was food that came from his father's court, and so there was -, . r. dish after dish set before them, and they were Promise after i i r ■, . . -d . ^^^ u r i. . . ^ commanded freely to eat. But still, when a fresh " ' dish was set before them, they would, whisper- ingly say to each other, "What is it?" for they wist not what „ ^ to call it, Exod. xvi. 15. They drank also of Brave ejiter- ^, ^ \. ^ ■, ■ r . . ^ the water that was made wine; and were very taimnent. •., i_- rr-i • i n ^u merry with him. There was ransic also all the while at the table, and man did eat angels' food, and had honey given him out of the rock; so Mansoul did eat the food that ^-^as pe- culiar to the court, yea, they had now tiiereof to tb i full. Psalm Ixxviii. 24, 25. 1 must not forget to tell you, that at this table there were mu- sicians, so they were not those cf the country, nor yet of tlie town of Mansoul; but they were the masters of the songs that were sung at the court of Shaddai.* Now after the feast was over, immanuel was for entertaining ■n-j 11 the town with some curious riddles of secrets drawn up by his father's secretary, by the wisdom and skill of Shaddai; the like to tnese there are not in any kingdom. The riddles were made upon king Shaddai himself, and upon rpj J J .. Immanuel his son, and upon his wars and do- ine holy scrip- .^^.^ ^.j^^,^ Mansoul. Immanuel also expounded unto them some of those riddles himself; but oh * Tliis is the pospel-fcast— a feast of fit things— meat indeed, and drink indeed! not the produce of nature, but imported from heaven. The music also is heavenly; not the song of frothy vanity, l»ut such as saints and an- gels sing beforethe throne; the word of Christ, in psalms, hvmns, and spiritu- al songs. BY JOHN BUN VAN. ^7 how they were lightened! They saw what they never saw oe- fore; they could not have thought that such rarities could have heen couched in so few and such ordinary words. I told you before, whom these riddles did concern; and as they were open- ed, the people evidently saw it was so. Yea, they gathered, that the things themselves were a kind of portraiture, and tliat of Immanuel himself; for when they read in the scheme where the riddles were writ, and looked in tlie face of the prince, things looked so like one to the otlier, that Mansoul could not forbear but say, This is the Lamb, this is tlie sacrifice, this is the rock, this is the red cow, this is tlie door, and this is the way; with a great many other things more.* And thus he dismissed the town of Mansoul. But can you Th 1/7 f fl if^^gin*^ J^o^^' the people of the corporation were , "x taken with his entertainment? Oh, they were banquet. ^ , • , • , , , . , ■' transported with joy, they were drowned with wonder, while they saw, and understood, and considered what their Immanuel entertained '^hem withal, and v.hat mysteries he opened to them; and when they were at home in their houses, and in their most retired places, they could not but sing of him and of his actions. Yea, so taken were the townsmen now with their prince, that they would sing of him in their sleep. Now it was in the heart of the prince Immanuel to new-model 7,-- , . the town of Mansoul, and to put it into such a , , , condition as might be most pleasing to him, and . , that might best stand Avith the profit and security of the now flourishing town of Mansoul. He pro- vided also against insurrections at home, and invasions abroad: such love had he for the famous town of Mansoul. t Wherefore he first of all commanded, that the great slings, ™, . ^ ^ that were brought from his father's court when I he instruments , . .,° . ^ ^x i u u i, r ^ , f 1 "-^ came to the town ot Mansoul, should be J "" « . jijQm^t-ed, some upon the battlements of the castle, some upon the towers; for there were towers in the town of Mansoul, towers new built by Immanuel since he came thither. There was also an instrument invented by a , Immanuel, that was to throw stones, from the .,, . ^ " castle of Mansou', out at Mouth-gate; an in- nble instrument . ^..i^ ii ..i -..i *ii. . -_ , strument that could not be resisted, nor that could miss of execution; Avherefore, for the * The riddles seem to refer chiefly to the t)'i)es of Christ, wliich abound in the scriptures, which are full of divine entertainment to gracious and en- lightened souls. The very portraiture of Jesus is seen in thuiu; meditation on these adds greatly to the delight of the gospel feast. t The soul ofman, when converted to God, "must be new-modelled," "old things mii't pass away, all things be made ne^v." 128 THE HOLY WAR. wonderful exploits that it did when used, it "went without a name; and it was committed to the care of, and to be managed l.y, that brave captain, the Captain Credence, in case of war.* This done, Immanuel called the Lord Will-be-wil) to him, , ... and gave him in comm,andment to take care of the '^ '"■*^"!*'" gates, the wall and towers in Mansoul: also the promoted. ^^-^^^^ g^ve him the militia into his hand, and a special charg:; to withstand all insurrections and tumults that might be made in Mansoul, against tlie peace of our lord the king, and the peace and tranquillity of the town of Mansoul. He also gave him in commission, that if he found any of the Diabolonians lurking in any corner of the famous town ot Mansoul, he should forthwith a])prehend them and slay them, or commit them to safe custody, tliat they may be proceeded against according to law. Then he called unto him the Lord Understanding, who was the old lord-mayor, he that was put out of place My lord-mayor ^^,^^^^ Diabolus took tlietown, and put him into put into plave. ,^. ^ former office again, and it becau.e his place for his life time. He bid him also build it in fashion like a tower for a defence. He bid him also read in the revelations of mysteries all the days of his life, thathe might know how toper- form his office aright. He also made Mr Knowledge the recorder, not of contempt to old Mr Conscience, who had been recorder Mr Knoivledge ^j^foj^g. ^^^^ foj. ^^^^ j^. „,j^s jj^ his princely mind to made recorder. ^^^^^^ ^^^^^^ ^jj. Conscience another employ^ of which he told the old gentleman he should know more hereafter. Then he commanded that the image of Diabolus should be . ^ taken down from the place where it was setup; The image of ^^^ ^,^^^ ^^^^^. should utterly destroy it, beating the prince and j^ j^^^.^ powder, and casting it into the wind, his father set up ^.j^i.^^^ j,^g town->vall, and that the image of m Mansoul. Shaddai his father should be set up again, with his own, upon the castle-gales; and that it should be mure fairly drawn that ever, forasmuch as both his fother and himself were come to Mansoul in more grace and mercy than heretofore. Rev. xxii. 4. He would also that his name should be done on the best of gold, for the honour o^ Mansoul. f • This nameless engine, placed at mpiuh-gate, is prayer; its power is wonder- ful beyond description, and therefore it went without a name; no name can suf- ficiently describe the use and power of prayer. Matt. XXI. 22. + The understanding is re-instated in its proper and original office as chief magistrate of the town, and for his direction, is ordered to study the scrip- tures, for it is thus the understanding must be informed. Knowledge, the knowledge of God in Chiist, is to bear swav, another office being appointed for Mr Conscience; the image of Satan is now to be utterly destroyed, and Uiat of God renewed inth^." soul. BY JOHN BUNYAN. 129 CHAPTER X. The stronff holds of Diabolus destroyed. Incredulity, Lusting^, Forget- good, and other Diaboloiuius apprtliended, brought to trial, convicted, and executed, to the great joy of Mansoul. AFTER tliis Avas done, Immanuel gave out a commandment, which was, that those three greatest Uiabolonians sliouhl be ap- „ T». , , . prehended, namely, the two late lord- Some Uiabolonians ' ^ '^ at V i t^ itt t . . , , . raavors, to wit, Mr Incredulity and Mr Lust- committed to priso7i . ' i \t t? . ^ \^ ^ , ^, , ^ , /. ms-s, and Mr Jborpet-good trie recorder. under the hand of t> • j .^u ^i, r.i *i * __ „ .-' Besides these, there were some ot them that Jylr Trueman the t^- u i 11 1 i 1 - Diabolus made burgesses and aldermen in " ' Mansoul, that were committed to Avard by the hand of the now valiant and now right noble, the brave Lord Will-be-will. And these were their names: Alderman Atheism, Alderman Hard-heart, and Alderman False-peace. The burgesses were, Mr No-truth, Mr Pitiless, Mr Haughty, with the like. These were committed to close custody; and the goaler's name was Mr Trueman: this Trueman was one of those that Immanuel brought Avith him from his Father's court, Avhen at first he made a Avar upon Diabolus in the town of Mansoul, After this, the prince gave a charge that the three strong _. . , , holds Avhich at the command of Diabolus the Dia- la us s ^jQiQjjjj^^g built in Mansoul, should be demolished tuUeddoTvi^ and utterly pulled down; of which holds, and their P ' names, Avith their captains and governors, you read a little before; but this was long in doing, because of the large- ness of the places, and because the stones, the timher, the iron, and all the rubbish, Avere to be can-ied Avithout the town.* - 1 jj When this Avas done, the prince gave Jlcojirt to be call- ^^^^^^ ^^,^(. ^|,g lord-mayor and aldermen ot edto try the l)ia- T^jansoul should call a court of judicature for bolomans. ^j^^ ^^.j^^ ^^^ execution of theDiabolonians iu the corporation, now under the care of Mr Trueman the gaoler. Now when the time was come, and the court set, command- . ment Avas sent to Mr Trueman the gaoler, to bi-ing 1 he prisoners ^^^ prisoners down to the bar. Then were the 6ro?/^/u"^o ?/i«? p^^.^^^^^^g brought down, pinioned and chained together, as the custom of the toAvn of Mansoul * When grace begins to reig^n, we must mortify the flesh, Avith its affec- tions and lusts. Jesus Chnst came to destroy the Avorks of the devil, ami to pull down his strong hold,'.. But, truly, this ia a work of time and irameuse labour. 130 THE HOLY WAR. was. So when they were presented before the lord-mayor, the recorder, and the rest of the honourable bench; first, the jury ,„, . , was emnannelled, and then the witnesses ^ he jnry empan- 't,, r.i • *i ,, , , '. sworn. 1 he names ot the iiirv were these: 7i€[lea, and ivit7ies- -^, r» i- r ^* n- u 4^ tv* 'tt • i» -Kit Mr Belief, Mr 1 ruehart, Mr Upright, Mr Hat'j-bad, Mr Love-good, ^Mr See-truth, Mr Heavenly-Mind, Mr ISIoderate, Mr Thankful, Mr Gootl-work, Mr Zeal-for-God, and Mr Humble. The names of the M'it- nesses were, Mr Know-all, Mr Tell-true, Mr Hate-lies, with my Lord "NV^ill-be-will, and iiis man, if need were.* So the prisoners were set to the bar. Then said Mr Do-right, 7) ■>-' hf fh ^^°^' ^^^ ^^^ ^^ tOAvn-clerk) Set Atheism to tiie bar, 1 h^ ' gaoler. So he was set to the bar. Then said the n^i '• ,. clerk, Athvho will give afaiUi- ful verdict lor God against sin. BY JOHN BUNYAN. 151 getlier, and he at that time talked briskly of divers opinions; and then and there I lieard him say, that for liispart he believed tliere was no God: but said he, I can profess one, and be religious too, if the company I am in, and the circurast.inces of other things, shall ])ut me upon it. Clerk. You are sure you have heard him say thus? Kno-w-all. Upon mine oath, I heard him say thus. Mr Tell-true Then said the clerk, Mr Tell-true, what say celled ^^^ ^° ^'^^ king's judges touching the prisoner at the bar? Tell-true. My lord, I formerly was a great companion of his (for which I now repent me) and I have often heard him say, and that with very great stomach fulness, that he believed there was neither God, angel, or spirit. Clerk. Where did you hear him say so? Tell-true. In Black-raouth-lane, and in Blasphemers-row, and in many other places besides. Clerk. Have you much knowledge of him? Tell-trice. I know him to be a Diabolonian, the son of a Dia- bolonian, and a horrible man to deny a Deity; his father's name was Never-be-good, and he had more children than this Atheism. 1 have no more to say. Clerk. Mr Hate-lies, look upon the prisoner at the bar; do you know him? Hate-lies. My lord, this Atheism is one of the vilest wretches rpi ,• . that ever I came near, or had to do with in my f \T TT f ^^^^'' 1 have heard him say that there is no God; / I have heard him say that there is no world to come, no sin, nor punishment hereafter; and more- over, I have heard him say, that it was as good to go to a whore- house as to hear a sermon. Clerk. Where did you hear him say these things? Hate-lies. In Drunkard 's-row, just at Rascal's-lane-end, at the hpuse in which Mr Impiety lived. ^ . Clerk. Set him by, gaoler,* and set Mr Sjiisti7i£rs set to -r . - x - 1 i fi 7 Lustmgs to the bar. Mr Lustings, thou art here indicted by the ~ -,..,. name of Lustings (an intruder upon the town of Mansoul) for that thou hast devilishly and traitorously taught by practice and filthy words, that it is lawful * Atheism is fairly tried and justly condemned. Alas.' how much practical atheism is there amoii^ professed Christians] For if men live without prayer, and in opposition to his will, they live " without Gtalin the world," and what is this but atheism? 132 THE HOLY WAR. and profitable to man to give way to his carnal desires; and that thou, for thy part, hast not, nor ever wilt, deny thyself of any sinful delight as long as thy name is Lustings. How sayest thou? art thou guilty of this indictment or not? Lvstijigs. Then said Mr Luslings, My lord, I am a man of jr 11 '^'g^ birth, and haye been used to pleasures, aixl -' ' pastimes, and greatness. I have not been wont to be snubbed for my doings, but have been left to follow my will as if it were law. And it seems strange to me that I should this day be called into qutstion for what not only I, but almost all men, do either secretly or openly countenance, love, and ap- prove of. Clerk. Sir, we concern not ourselves with your greatness, (though tlie higher, the better you should have been) but we are concerned, and so are you, about an indictment preferred against you. How say you? are you guilty of it, or not? Litstings. Not guilty. Clerk. Crier, call upon the witnesses to stand forth and give their evidence. _„. „ , Crier. Gentlemen, you the witnesses for Witnesses called ^, , • a • • • i c . J . the king, come and gjve in your evidence tor •5 •= ■ our lord the king against the prisoner at the bar. Clerk. Come, Mr Know-all, look upon the prisoner at the bar. Do you know him? Know-all. Yes, my lord, I know him. Clerk. What is his name? K7iotv-all. His name is Lustings; he is the son of one Beastly; his mother bare him in Flesh-street: she Mas one Evil-con- cupiscence's daughter. I knew all the generation of them. Clerk. Well said. You have heard his indictment: what say you to it? is he guilty of the things charged him or not? Know-all. My lord, he has, as he saith, been a great man indeed; and greater in wickedness than by pedigree, more than a thousand fold. Clerk. But what do you know of his particular actions, and especially with refei'ence to his indictment' • Kio-w-all. I know him ti be a swearer, a liar, a sabbath- jj. .J breaker: I know him to be a fornicator, and an un- 7^^ ^ / clean person; I know him to be guilty of abundance " ■ of evils. He has been, to my knowledge, a very filthy man. Clerk. But where did he use to commit his wickedness? in some private corner, or more openly and shamelessly? Knoxv-all. All the town over, my lord. BY JOHN BUNYAN. 133 Clerk. Come, Mr Tell-true, what have you to say for our lord the king against the prisoner at the bar? Tell-true. My lord, all that the first witness has said I know to be true, and a great deal more besides. Clerk. Mr Lustings, do you hear what these gentlemen say ? Lustings. I was ever of opinion, that the happiest life that a man could live en earth, was, to keep himself from nothing J . t h ^^*^ '^^ desired in the world; nor have I been I- I f false at any time to this opinion of mine, but J ' have lived in the love of my notions all my days; nor was I ever so churlish, having found such sweetness in them myself, as to keep the commendation of them from others. Court. Then said the court. There hath proceeded enough from his own mouth to lay him open to condemnation; where- T 7 7-.^ fore set him by,* gaoler, and set Mr Incredu- Jncredimtij set ,-, ^ ^. ^ f fj, h lily to the bar. '^^ ^^''- Clerk. Mr Incredulity, thou art here in- dicted by the name of Incredulity (an intruder upon the town of „. . ,. Mansoul,) for that thou hast feloniously and ms tnaictmem. ^^^kedly, and that when thou wert an officer in the town cf Mansoul, made head against the captains of the great Shaddai, when they came and demanded possession of Mansoul; yea, thou didst bid defiance to the name, forces, and cause of the king; and didst also, as did Diabolus thy captain, stir up and encourage the town of Mansoul to make head against and resist the said force of the king. What sayest thou to this indictment? art thou guilty, or not? Then said Incredulity, I know not Shaddai: I loved my old TT- . prince; I thought it my duty to be true to my trust, " ■ and to do what I could to possess the minds of the men of Mansoul to do their utmost to resist sti-angers and foreigners, and with might to fight against them. Nor have I, nor shall I, change my opinion for fear of trouble, though you at present are possessed of place and power. Court. Then said the court; The man, as you see, is in- corrigible; he is for maintaining his villanies by stoutness of „ , words, and his rebellion with impudent con- y l^ fidence. And therefore set him by, gaoler;t ^^ '^^' and set Mr Forget-good to the bar. * Lusting, or the sinful lusts of the flesh, is well described; he is the son of one Beastly, his mother a daughter of Evil-concupiscence, a swear- er, a liar, a fornicator, &c. &.c. He is a true Diabolonian; and as all God's people are to walk, not according to the flesh, but according to the spirit, he must die. t Unbeliefis the great instigator of rebellion against God; out of his own moiuh he is condemned as absolutely incorrigible. M 134 THE HOLY WAR. Clerk. Mr Forget-good, thou art here indicted by the name nis indictment "^ Forget-good (an intruder upon the town of Mansoul,) for that thou, Avhen the whole affairs of the town of Mansoul were in thy hand, didst utterly forget to serve them in what Mas good, and didst fall in with the tyrant Diabolus against Shaddai the king, against his captains, and all his host, to the dishonour of Shaddai, the bi*each of his law, and the endangering of the destruction of the famous town of Mansoul. What sayest thou to this indictment? art thou guilty, or not guilty? Then said Forget-good, Gentlemen, and at this time my JJ-. , judges, as to the indictment by which I stand accused -' ' of several crimes before you, pray attribute my forget- fulness to my age, and not to my wilfulness; to the craziness of my brain, and not the carelessness of my mind; and then I hope I may by your charity be excused from great punishment, though I be guilty. Then said the court. Forget-good, Forget-good, thy forget- fulness of good was not simply of frailty, but of purpose and for that thou didst loath to keep virtuous things in thy mind. What was bad, thou couldst retain; but what was good thou couldst not abide to think of: thy age, therefore, and thy pretended craziness, thou makest use of to blind the court withal, and T^.^ as a cloak to cover thy knavery. But let us hear Avhat ,, , * the witnesses have to say for the king, against the pri- soner at the bar. Isheguilty of this indictment, or not? Hate-lies. My lord, I have heard this Forget-good say, that he could uever abide to think of goodness, no not for a quarter of an hour. Clerk. Where didst thou liear him say so? Hate-lies. In All-base-lane, at a house next door to the sign of the Conscience-seared-with-a-hot-iron. Clerk. Mr Know-all, what can you say for our lord the king, against the prisoner at the bar? ^ J J Knotv-all. My lord, I know the man Avell; he Lrenera cia- .^ ^ Diabolonian, the son of a Diabolonian, his ^^^''^'"•^'" father's name was Love-naught; and for him I g'e -gooc . x^^yo, often heard him say, that he counted the very thoughts of goodness the most burtliensome thing in the world. Clerk. Where have you heard him say these words? Knoiv-all. In Flesh-lane, right opposite to tlic church. Then said the clerk. Come, Mr Tell-true, give in your evi- deace concerning the prisoner at the bar, about that for which he stands here, as you see, indicted before tliis honourable court, TvU-tvue. My Lord, I have heai'd him often say, he had rather BY JOHN BUNYAN. 135 think of Ihe vilest thing, than of what is contained in the hoi}- scriptures. Clerk. Where did you hear him say such grievous words? Tell-true Where? in a great many places; particularly in Nauseous-street, in the house of one Shameless; and in Filth- lane, at the sign of the Reprebate, next door to the Descent-into- the-pit. Court. Gentlemen, you have heard the indictment, his plea, and the testimony of the witnesses.* Gaoler, set Mr Hard-heart to the bar. He is set to the bar. Clerk. Mr Hard-heart, thou art here indicted by the name zr J 7 ^ ^ of Hard-heart (an intruder upon the town of Hard-heart set ^^ ^ \ c .^ ^ j.-i i- > 4. i. i ..1 f fi 1 , Mansoul,) for that thou didst most desperately and wickedly possess the town of Mansoul with TT- • 1- ^ ^ im])enitencv and obdurateness; and didst keep His indictmeiit. ^^ c ' 1 r *i • -i them from remorse and sorrow for their evils all the time of their apostacy from, and rebellion against, the blessed king Shaddai. Wliat sayest thou to this indictment? art thou guilty, or not guilty? Hard-Heai t. My lord, I never knew what remorse or sorrow meant, in all my life: I am impenetrable, I care for no man; nor can 1 be pierced with men's grief, their groans Avill not enter into my heart; whomsoever I mischief, whomsoever I wrong, to me it is music when to others mourning. Cotirt. Y'ou see the man is a right Diabolonian, and has con- victed hiraself.f Set him by, Gaoler, and set Mr False-peace to the bar. Mr False-peace, thou art here indicted by the same of False- , peace (an intruder upon the town of Mansoul), t ^Ij^'y^f^ for that thou didst most wickedly and satanically „ ^.^ ,• ' ^ brins?, hold, and keei) the town of Mansoul, His indictment. ^^^^ .^^ ^^^ apostacy and in her hellish re- hellion, in a false, groundless, and dangerous peace, and damnable security, to the dishonour of the king, the transgression of his law, and the great damage of the town of Mansoul. AVhat sayest thou? art thou guilty of this indictment, or not? Then said Mr False-peace, Gentlemen, and you now appoint- ed to be my judges, I acknowledge that my name is Mr Peace; * Forgetfulness of good, pleads a weak head, but the witnesses prove an avowed hatred of every thing scriptural nnd religious; it is therefore the fault of the heart rather than of the head, for, who is he that cannot remember what he loves? I Hardness of heart is quite in chai-acter; he is impenetrable, and knows not how to relent; he is also self-condemned. 136 THE HOLY WAR. „ . . but that my name is False-peace, I utterly deny. II ,. your hoDOUi-s should please to send for any that in- his name. i. ^ , , c .v. • i r .i . i • i timately know me, or for the mul-wite that laid ray mother of me, or for the gossips that were at my christening, they will any or all of them prove, that my name is not False- peace, but Peace. Wherefore I cannot plead to this indict- ment, for as much as my name is not inserted therein; and as is my true name, so also are my conditions. I was always a man that loved to live at quiet; and what I loved myself, that I thought others might love also. Wherefore when I saw that any of my neighbours laboured under a disquieted mind, I endeavoured to help them what 1 could; and I could give many instances of this good temper of mine: As, 1. When at the beginning our town of Mansoul declined the _, , , ... ways of Shaddai, some of them afterwards False-peace justi- , . i q- • ^- o ..• .u J. . A , •'^ began to have diquieting reflections on them- fies his conduct. , ^ 14.4.1 ujj k*¥ •^ selves tor what they had done: but 1, as one troubled to see them disquieted, presently sought out means to get them quiet again. 2. When the ways of the old world, and of Sodom, were in fashion; if any thing happened to molest those that were for the customs of the present times, I laboured to make them quiet again, and to cause them to act without molestation. 3. To come nearer home: Avhen the wars broke out between Shaddai and Diabolus, if at any time I saw any of the town of Mansoul afraid of destruction, I often used, by some way, device, invention, or other, to labour to bring them to peace again. Wherefore, since I have been always the man of so virtuous a temper, as some say a peace-maker is, and if a peace-maker be so deserving a man, as some have been bold to attest he is; then let me, gentlemen, be accounted by you, who have a great name for justice and equity in Mansoul, for a man that deserveth not this inhuman way of treatment, but liberty, and also a licence to seek damage of those that have been my accusers. Then said the clerk, Crier, make proclamation. Crier. "O yes! Forasmuch as the prisoner at the bar hath denied his name to be that which is mentioned in the indictment; .„ , . ^ the court requireth, that if there be any in Proclamation for ^^^.^ ^^^.^^ ^^^^ information to the the ■wit.iesses to ^^,^^,^^ ^^ ^,^^ original and right name of the comefoi c. prisoner, they would come forth and give in their evidence: for the prisoner stands upon his own innocence." Then came two into the court, and desired that they might have leave to speak what they knew concerning the prisoner at the bar; the name of the one was Search-truth, and the name of RY JOHN BUNYAN. 137 the other Yonch-truth: so tlie court demanded of tliese men if they knew the prisoner, and what they could say concerning him? for he stands, said they, upon his own vindication. Then said Mr Search-truth, My lord— Court. Hold; give him his oath. Then they swore him. so he proceeded. Search-truth. My lord, I know, and have known this man from a child, and can attest that his name is False-peace. I knew his father, his name was Mr Flatterer, The evidence ^^^ ^j^ mother, before she was married, was given by Mr ^^^^^^ ^^ ^^^^ ^^^^ of ^^^^ Sooth-up: and these Search-truth. ^^^^^ ^^^^^^ ^^^^ ^^^^ together, lived not long without this son; and Avhen he was born, they called his name False-peace. I was his playfellow, only I was somewhat older than he; and when his mother used to call him home from his play, she would say to him False-peace, False-peace, come home quick, or I will fetch you. Yea, I knew him when he sucked; and though I was then but little, yet I can remember, that when his mother used to sit at the door with him, or play- ed with him in her arms, she would call him twenty times to- gether. My little False-peace, my pretty False-peace! and O my sweet rogue. False-peace! and again, O my little bird. False- peace! and How do I love my child! The gossips also know it is thus, though he has had the face to deny it in open court. Then Mr Y'ouch-truth was called upon, to speak what he knew of him. So they sware him. Then said Mr Vouch-truth, My lord, all that the former wit- , , ness hath said is (rue: his name is False-peace, Mr Vouch-truth s ^,^^ ^^^ ^^ ^j^ Flatterer, and Mrs Sooth-up his evidence against ^^^ther. And I have in former times seen him False-peace. ^ngry with those that called him any thingelse but False-peace, foi- he would say that all such mocked and nick-nam- ed him; but this was at the time when Mr False-peace was a great man, and when the Diabolonians were the brave men in :Mansoul. Court. Gentlemen, you have heard what these two men have sworn against the prisoner at the bar. And now, Mr False- peace, to you: Y"ou have denied your name to be False-Peace; vet you see that these honest men have sworn that this is your name. As to your plea, in that you are quit; besides the mat- ter of your indictment, you are not by it charged for evil doing, because you are a man of peace, or a peace The true charac- ^^^^^ ^^ ^.^^^^, neighbours, but that you ter of False-peace ^.^ wickedly and satanically bring, keep, and discovered. ^^^^ ^^^ ^^^^^ of Mansoul both under its apos- M 3 138 THE HOLY WAR. tacy from, and Id its rebellion against its king, in a folse, lying and damnable peace, contrary to the law of Shaddai, and to tht> hazard of the destruction of the then miserable town of Mansoul. All that you have pleaded foryousclf, is, that you have denied your name, &c. but here you see, we have witnesses to prove that you are the man. For the peace that you so much boast of making among your neighbours, know, that the peace that is not a companion of truth and holiness, but is without this foundation, is grounded upon a lie, and is both deceitful and damnable, as also the great Shaddai hath said: thy plea therefore, hath not delivered thee from what by thy indictment thou art charged with, but rather it doth fasten all upon thee. But thou shalt have very fair play: let us call the witnesses that are to testify as to matters of fact, and see what they have to say for our lord the king, against the prisoner at the bar. Clerk. Mr Know-all, what say you for our lord the king, against the prisoner at the bar? Knotv-all. My lord, this man hath for a long time made it, Tf. v //' ^^ "^^ knowledge, his business to keep the . , ' town of Mansoul in a sinful quietness, in the midstofall her lewdness, filthiness, and turmoils^ and hath said, and that in my hearing. Come, come, let us fly from all trouble, on what ground soever it comes, and let us be for a quiet and peaceable life though it wanteth a good foundation. Clerk. Come, Mr Hate-lies, whtit have you to say? Hate-lies. My lord, I have heard him say, that peace, though in a way of unrighteousness,* is better than trouble with truth. Clerk. Where did you hear him say this? Hate-lies. I heard him say it in Folly-yard, at the house of one Mr Simple, next door to the sign of the Self-deceiver. Yea, he hath said this, to my knowledge, twenty times in that place.* Court. We may spare further witness; this evidence is plain , and full. Set him bv. Gaoler, and set Mr No- JVo truth set ^^^^^^^ ^^ ^^^ ^^^ ^j^. No-truth thou art here to the bar. [ndlcted bv the name of No-trulh (an intruder Hisindictment. ^^^^^ ^,^^ -^^^^.^ ^^ Mansoul) for that thou hast always, to the dishonour of Shaddai, and to the endaiigering of the utter ruin of the famous town of Mansoul, set thyself to de- * False-peace denies his name, jostifies his conduct, and pleads his mihl pa- cific disposition; but the witnesses, Search-truth, Vouch-ti nth, and others, prove he is rightly called False-peace, ar.d that he had laboured to keep the town ill a state of sinful quiet, in the midst cf all its abominations, and when it ought to have been alarmed; for " there is no peace, saith my God, to the wicked." Every gracious soul will unite in its condemnation. BY JOHN BUNYAN. 139 face and utterly to spoil all the remainders of the law and image of Shaddai, that have been found in Mansoul, after her deep apostacy from her king-, to Diabolus, that envious tyrant. What sayest thou? art thou guilty of this indictment, or not? J\ro-truth. Not guilty, my lord. Then the witnesses were called; and Mr Know-all first gave in his evidence against him. Knoio-all. My lord, this man was at the pulling down of the -J J J image of Shaddai; yea this is he that did it with His giuLt clearly ^.^^ ^^^^ h^nAs. I myself stood by and saw ^^"^^ ■ liim do it, and he did it at the command of Diabolus. Yea, this Mr No-truth did more than this, he did also set up the horned images of the beast Diabolus, in the same /lace. This is also he that, at the bidding of Diabolus, rent and tore, and caused to be consumed, all that he could of the re- mainders of the law of the king, even whatever he could lay his hands on in Mansoul. Clerk. Who saw him do this, besides yourself? Hate-lies. I did, my lord, and so did many others beside; for this was not done by stealth, or in a corner, but in the open view of all; yea, he chose himself to do it publicly, for he de- lighted in doing it. Clerk. Mr No-truth, how could you have the face to plead Not guilty, when you were so manifestly the doer of all this wickedness? JVo-triith. Sir, I thought I must say something; and as my _-. , ^ name is, so 1 speak: I have been advantaged there- His cletence • '' ' by, before now, and did not know but, by speaking no truth, I might have reaped the same benefit now.* Clerk. Set him by. Gaoler, and set Mr Pitiless to the bat •n-.-j ^* ^i z. ' — Mr Pitiless thou art here indicted by Pitiless set to the oar. ., rn-^^-i t • ,. i *u the name oi Pitiless (an intruder upon the town of Mansoul,) for that thou didst most treacherously and „• • /• ^ ^ wickedlv shut up all bowels of compassion. His mdictinent. , •, ,, .«. ^^ ,, , and wouldst not sutter poor Mansoul to console her own misery, when she apostatized from her rightful king; but didst evade, and at all times turn her mind away from those thoughts that had in them a tendency to lead her to repentance. What sayest thou to this indictment? guilty, or not guilty? Pitiless. Not guilty of pitilessness: all I did, was to cheer up, * No-truth, or Falsehood, is a desperate Diabolonian; it was he whodefacec the image of God, hated his law, and endeavoured utterly to destroy all gpooa- ness in the town; but he that knows all, and who requireth truth in the inwan parts, will detect and destroy him. 140 THE HOLY WAR. Pitiless denies '^^•^"''^'"S to »")' "»i^e; for my name is not Pitl- ; • «r,.yi^ less, but Cheer-up; and I could not abide to see ills 7i-CltTic% -,.- i»i- 1 ■» 11 31ansoul inclined to melancholy. Clerk. How! do you deny your name, and say it is not Pi- tiless, but Cheer-up? Call for vitness: Avhat say you the wit- nesses to this plea? Kno~LV-all. My lord, his name is Pitiless; so he hath wrote himself in all papers of concern wherein he has had to do. But these Diabolonians love to counterfeit their names, Mr Covet- ousness covers himself with the name of Good-husbandry, or the like: Mr Pride can, when need is, call himself Mr Neat, Mr Handsome, or the like, and so of all the rest of them. Clerk. Mr Tell-true, what say you? Tell-true. His name is Pitiless, my lord: I have known him from a child; and he hath done all that wickedness Avherewith he stands charged in the indictment; but there is a company of them that are not acquainted with the danger of damning, there- fore they call all those melancholy, who have serious thoughts how tliat state should be shunned by them.* C(erk. Set Mr Haughty to the bar. Gaoler. Mr Haughty, Haughty set to^^^^.^^^^ *'*^^'^ indicted by the name of Haughty ., ? ^ (an intruder upon the town of Mansoul,) for tliat thou didst most traitorously and devilishly teach the town of Mansoul to carry it loftily and stoutly against the jr. • J- f f summonses that were given them by the captains of the king Shaddai. Thou didst also teach the town of Mansoul to speak contemptuously and villifying of their great king Shaddai; and didst moreover encoui-age, both by words and example, Mansoul to take up arms both against the king, and his son Inimanuel. How sayest thou? art thou guilty of this indictment or not? Ilanglity. Gentlemen, I have always been a man of courage and valour, and have not used, when under the greatest clouds, to sneak or hang down the head like a b'ilrush; nor did it at all at -any time please me to see men veil their bonnets to those that have opposed them. Yea, though their adversaries seemed to Ti/T TT 7^ ' have ten times the advantage of them. I did Jilr Haughty nis- ^ ^ -it c ^•r 1- 11- '^ot use to consider who was ray foe, nor tints himself. i ^ .i • i • i t i •^ •' what the cause was in which I was engaged; * Pitiless is chai-ged with wickedly evading all those thoughts which should havp led to lejientancc; but endeavours to exculpate himself' under the nanxe of C)ieei-up; so many sins shelter themselves under pleasing names: "With nanits of virtue she deceives The aged and the young; And while thelieedless wretch bflieves, Shr makes liis fetters slii.jig." BY JOHN BUNYAN. 141 it was enough for me if 1 carried it bravely, fought like a man, and came off a victor. Court. Mr Haughty, you are not here indicted for that you have been a valiant man, nor for your courage and stoutness in times of distress; but for that you have made use of this your pretendtd valour to draw the town of Mansoul into acts of re- bellion both against the great king and Immanuelhis son. This is the crime, and the thing wherewith thou art charged in and by the indictment. But he made no answer to that.* Now when the court had thus far proceeded against the prisoners at the bar, then they put them over to the verdict of their jury, to whom they addressed themselves after this manner: Court. Gentlemen of the jury, you have been here, and have mi ri ^j 7 seen these men: you have heard their indict- The Courts ad- . .. • i i i ^.i -^ i, , ^ ^t • ments, their pleas, and what the witnesses have dress to the jury. ^ .r,\ ■ ^J i . • • ^ ^ testified against them: now what remains, is, that you forthwith withdraw yourselves to some place, where without confusion you may consider of what verdict, in a way of truth and righteousness, you ought to bring in for the king against them, and bring it in accordingly. Then the jury, to wit, Mr Belief, Mr True-heart, Mr Up- right, Mr Hate-bad, Mr Love-good, Mr See-truth, Mr Heavenly- mind, Mr Moderate, Mr Thankful, Mr Humble, Mr Good- work, and Mr Zeal-for-God, withdrew themselves, in order to their work. Now when they were shut up by themselves, they fell to discourse among themselves, in order to the drawing up of their verdict. And thus Mr Belief (for he was the foreman) began " Gentle- The iurv deliver "^en," quoth he, " for the men, the prisoners . ,; ". .. . ,. at the bar; for mv part, I believe that thev 171 their verdict dis- ,, , , .i.',-, cc\t • i . ,, • i n./ .. ,, all deserve death. " " Very right," said Mr " ^' True-heart, "I am wholly of your opinion.' ** And so am T," said Mr Upright. *' O what a mercy is it," said Mr Hate-bad, " that such villains as these are apprehend- ed!" "Ay, ay," said Mr Love-good, " this is one of the joy- fullest days that ever I saw in my life." Then said Mr See- truth, "I know that if we judge them to death, our verdict shall stand before Shaddai himself." " Nor do I at all question it," said Mr Heavenly-mind; he said moreover, "when all such beasts as these are cast out of Mansoul, what a goodly town will it be then!" 'I'hen said Mr Moderate, "It is not my manner to pass my judgment with rashness; but for these, their crimes • The haughtiness of man must be brought low, for God abaseth the proud, but giveth grace to the humble. 142 THE HOLY WAR. are so notorious, and the witness so palpable, that that man must be wilfully blind who says the prisoners ought not to die." •' Blessed be God," said Mr Thankful, " tliat the traitors are in safe custody." "Audi join with you in tliis, upon my bare-knees," suid Mr Humble. "I am glad also," said Mr Good-work. Then said the warm man, and true-hearted Mr Zeal-for-God, "Cut tliem off; they have been the plague, and sought the de- struction of Mansoul."* Thus therefore being all agreed in tlieir verdict, they came in- stantly into the court. Clerk. Gentlemen of the jury, answer all to your names. Mr Belief, One: Mr True-heart, Two: Mr Upright, Three: Mr Hate-bad, Four: Mr Love-good, Five: Mr See-truth, Six: Mr Heavenly-mind, Seven: ISIr Moderate, F/ight: Mr Thankful, Nine: Mr Humble, Ten: Mr Good-work, Eleven: ^Mr Zeal-for- God, twelve: Good men and true, stand together in your verdict; are you all agreed? Jury. Yes, my lord. Clerk. Who shall speak for you? Jiivy. Our foreman. Clerk. You, the Gentlemen of the jury, being empannelled for our lord the king, to serve here in a matter of life and death, have heard the trials of each of these men the prisoners at the bar: what say you? are they guilty of that, and those crimes of which they stand here indicted, or are they not guilty? a„ . Forema?i. Guilty, my lord. .Mil pronounc- ri; ; t i * • i , \ .J Clerk. Look to your prisoners, gaoler. 6 il' This was done in the morning, and in the after- noon they received sentence of death according to the law. The gaoler, therefore, having received such a charge, put them all in the inward prison, to preserve them there till tlie day of execution, which was to be the next morning. But now to see how it happened, one of the prisoners. Incre- dulity by name, in the interim betvv'ixtthe sentence and time oJ _ , ,-, - 7 execution, broke prison, and made his escape, Increclmty breaks , ,,. ' ./ » r .i * e . ^ and got him away quite out oi the town or ^ ' Mansoul, and lay lurking in such places and holes as he might, until he should again have opportunity to do • There is, in the renewed soul, a sincere detestation of all sin. As this jury are unanimous in their verdict, so all real Christians will most cordially iniite in the dooming his lusts to death. " Yes, my Redeeuu r, they shall die. My heart hath so decreed; Nor will I spare the guilty things That maile mv Saviotn* bleed." BY JOHN BUNYAN. 143 die town of Mansoul a mischief for their thus handling of him as they did. Now when Mr Trueman the gaoler perceived that he had lost his prisoner, he was in a heavy taking, because Ae (that prisoner we speak of) was the very worst of all the gang: wherefore first he goes and acquaints my Lord-mayor, Mr Recorder, and my Lord Will-be-will, Avith the matter, and to get of them an order to make search for him throughout the town of Mansoul. So an order he got, and search was made, but no such man could now be found in all the town of Mansoul. All that could be gathered, was, that he had lurked awhile about the outside of the town, and that ht re and there one or other had a glimpse of him as he made his escape out of Man- soul; one or two also affirmed, that they saw him without the town, going apace quite over the plain.* Now when he was quite gone, it was affirmed by one Mr Did-see, that he ranged TncreduUty.goes f !^ 7^^ ^/^ P^^^^'' ^'" ^"^ "^f ^^^^ Diabolus to Diabohit -^ iriend, but where should they meet one another but upon Hell-gate-hill. But oh! what a lamentable story did the old gentleman tell to Diabolus, con- cerning what sad alteration Immanuel had made in Mansoul. As, first, how Mansoul had after some delays, received a Jin ^ tells } im g^"^!"^! pardon at the hands of Immanuel; and ■what Lnmamtel t'^} ^1^^^ \^.^ '^^^^ed him into the town, and is no-w doing in ^^^ ^^^^ ^'"^ ^^'^ ""^^ /°^ ^', possession. jyiansoul ^^" ' "^o^'^o"^'^^> that they had called his soldiers into the town, coveted who should quarter the most of them; they also entei'tained him with the timbrel, song, and dance. But that, said Incredulity, that is the sorest vexation to me, that he hath pulled down, O father, thy image, and set up his own; pulled down thy officers and set his own. Yea, and Will-be-will, that rebel, who, one would have thought, should never have turned from us, is now in as great favour with Immanuel as ever he was with thee. But, besides all this, this Will-be-will has received a special commission from his Master, to search for, to apprehend, and put to death, all, and all manner of Diabolonians that he shall find in Mansoul: yea, and this Will-be-will has taken and committed to prison al- ready eight of ray lord's most trusty friends in Mansoul; nay * Unbelief was apprehemled and condemned — but, alas! he escapes. This incident is introduced by the author with g^reat skill; he eludes justice, and flies to hell, to meditate new mischiefs. Ah! where is the believer who is at all limes wholly free from the assaults of this arch-rebel!" where is the chris- tian who has not occasion to say, and that with tears, " Lord! I believe, hel^j thou mine unbelief^' 144 THE HOLY WAR. fruUier, my lord, (with g:rief I speak it,) they have been all ar- raigned, condemned, and I doubt, before this, executed in ^Man- soul. I told my lord of eight; and myself was the ninth, -nho should assuredly have drunk of the same cup, but that through craft I liave made mine escape from them. When Diabolus had heard this lamentable story, he yelled, _-,.,, „ and snuffed up the wind like a draeon, and made JJiabohis yells at . i' i i j i -.i i • • v i ^, -' the sky look dark with his roaring: he also Trip 77P'Zi)9 swai'e that he would try to be revenged of Mansoul for this. So they concluy all means." Tliis is enjoyed only in the ex- ercise of fai.h. Happy is the heart where God's peace takes the lead. It is the Christian's first and daily l^isiness to maintain tliis peace within, and then all ^oes well. 160 THE HOLY WAR. war upon Mansoul to take it, this Mr Carnal-security was then in the town, and \va.s n great doer among the people, encour- aging them in their rebellion, and pntling them upon hardening themselves in tiieir resisting the king's Forces: but when he saw that the town of Mansoul was taken and converted to the use of the glorious pi-ince Immanuel; and wlien he also saw what was become of Diabolus, and how he was unroosted, and made to quite the castle in the greatest contempt and scorn; and tliat the town of Mansoul was well lined with captains, engines of war, and mei;, and also provisions; what dotli he hut wheel about also, and as he had served Diabolus against the good prince, so he feigned that he would serve the prince against his foes; and, having got some little smattering of Immanuel 's things by the end (being bold) he ventures himself into the company of the towns- men, and attempts also to chat among them. Now he knew that the power and strength of the town of Mansoul was great, and that it could not but be pleasing to the people, if he cried up their might and their glory; wh°»'efore he beginueth his tale with the power and strength of Mansoul, and affirmeth, that it was im- a ityT n pregnable; now magnifving the captains, and Bow Mr Car- K • i- i *' • ^ *i • .1 • , .^ , then* shngs and tueir rams; then crynig up their nal-security oe- c x-r .• 1 * 111 j 1 A ^x. , ^ fortifications and strong holds; and lastly, the /* M" / a-ssurance that they had from their prince, that *' * Mansoul should be happy forever. But when he saw that some of the men of the town were tickled and taken with this discourse, he makes it his business, and, walking from street to street, house to house, and man to man, he broughr also Mansoul to dance after his pipe, and to grow almost as carnally secure as himself; so from talking they went to feast- ing, and from feasting to sporting, and so to some other mat- ters (now Immanuel was yet in the town of Mansoul, and he wisely observed their doings;) my Lord-mayor, my Lord Will- be-will, and Mr Recorder, were also taken with the words of The heads of ^'*'^ tattling Uiabolonian gentleman; forgetting -.. J ^ that their prince had given them warning before, Mansoul se- ^ ^ . , , ,. ^ .1 , , mi-., . , to take need tJiat tliey were not beguiled with any Uiabolonian sleight; he had further told them, that the security of the now flourishing town of Mansoul did not so much lie in her present fortifications and force, as in her so using of what slie had, as might oblige her Immanuel to abide within her castle. For the right doctrine of Immanuel was, that the town of Mansoul should take heed that they forget not his father's love and his; also that tlu y should so demeah them- selves a« to continue to keep themselves therein JNow BY JOHis BUNYAN. ici this was not the way to do it, namely, to fall in love with one of the Diabolonians, and with such an one too as Mr Carnal-security was, and to he led up and down by the nose by him: they should have heard their prince, feared their prince, loved their prince, and have stoned this naughty pack to death, an(l taken cace to have walked in the ways of their prince's pre- scribing; for then should their peace have been as a riverj when their righteousness had been like the waves of the sea.* Now when Immanuel perceived that through the policy of Mr Carnal-security the hearts of the men of Mansoul were chilled and abated in their practical love to him; First, he bemoans them, and bewails their state with the Immanuel be- secretary, saying, " O that my people had heark- moans Man- ^'^ ""^° "^'^' ''*"'' *'^^^ Mansoul had walked in my soul. ways! I would have fed them with the finest of the wheat; and with honey out of the rock would I have sustained them." This done, he said in his heart, 1 will return to the court, and go to my place, till Mansoul shall consi- der and acknowledge their offence. And he did so, and the cause and manner of his going away from them was thus, for that Mansoul declined him, as is manifest in these particulars: 1. They left off tlieir former way of visiting him, they came not to his I'oyal palace as afore. 2. They did not regard, nor yet take notice, that he came, or came not to visit them. 3. The love feasts that had wont to be between their prince and them, though he made them still, and called them to them, yet they neglected to come to them, or to be delighted with them. 4 They waited not for his counsel, but began to be head- strong and confident in themselves, concluding that now they were strong and invincible, and that Mansoul was secure, and beyond all reach of the foe, and that her state must needs be un- alterable for ever. Now, as was said, Immanuel, perceiving that, by the craft of * Carnal-security is well described, as it is the offspring of Self-conceit and Fear-aothmg. This is one of those evils into w!iich the professors of re- ligion.niay be lunvarily drawn; and it proceeds from an abuse of the doc- trines of grace. The true doctrine of God, as the author observes, is, that be- lievers should not forget the love of the father and of the son, but so demean themselves as to continue therein; but camal-seeurity makes men trust to their fortifications, their privi leges, rather than to the Loid; and while they boast of perseverance take no care to persevere, but grow careless about prayer, communion with God, and coming to his table; while pride, sloth, and con- formity to the world prevail. The spirit has been much encouraged lately by some preachers, and many have been " tickled and taken with tiieir dis- course " O 2 162 THE HOLY WAR. Mr Carnal-security, the town of Mansoul was taken off from their dependance upon him, and upon hi-s father by him, and set upon what by them was bestowed upon it; he first, as 1 said, „ , ^ bemoaned their state: then he used means to He endeavours to , . i . i ' ^ ^i ^i * , . ^, make tliem understand tnat tJie May they went reclaim them. . , f. , 4. \ a \ ■ i. . on in was dangerous: tor he sent my lord liigh secretary to them, to forbid them such wt.ys; but twice when he came to them, he found them at dinner in Mr Carnal-security's ,„, . . parlour; and perceiving also that they w ere not rj 1 f,f f . willing to reason about matters concerning their Ho.y {j^liost a7ia . j^^ ^^^^ eriefand went his way. The \/inst o " o . which when he had told to the prince Tmmanuel, he was grieved also, and returned to his father's court. _, . ^ ., J Now the methods of his withdrawing, as I Christ ivithdraivs • i r .-u ,, was saymg betore, were thus: not all at once. ^ j,^.^^ ^^.,^5^^ j^^ ^^.^^ ^^^ ^^,^|^ ^^^^ j^^ MjvQsouI, he kept himself close, and more retired than formerly. 2. His speech was not now, if he came into their company, so pleasant and familiar as foi-merly. 3. Nor did he, as in times past, send to Mansoul from his table those dainty bits which he was wont to do. 4. Nor, when they came to visit him, as now and then they would, would he be so easily spoken with, as they found him in . , . ^ times past. Thcv might now knock once, vea 1/ie ivorknng oj ^^^.^^^ ^^^^ ^^ ^.^^jj ^^^^ ^^^ ^^ ^^^ ^^ regard their ojfections. ^^^^^,^ whereas formerly he would run and meet them halfway, and take them too and lay them in his bosom.* Thus Immamiel carried it now; and by this his carriage he thought to make them beUiink themselves, and return to him. But alas! they did not consider, they did net know liis ways, they regarded not, they were not touclied with these, nor with the true remembrance of former favours, Ezek. xi. 21. Hosea, V. 15. Lev. xxvi. 21 — 24. Wherefore what does he but in private manner withdraw himself, first from his palace, then to the gate of the town, and so away from Mansoul he goes, till they should acknowledge their offence, and more earnestly seek his face. Mr God's-pcace also laid down his commission, and would for the present act no longer. Thus they valked con- trary to him, and he again, by way of retaliation, walked contrary to them, Jer. ii. 32. But alas! by this time they were so hard- * Cai-nal-sccurity, however pleasing to the flesh, grieves tlie Holy Spirit, destroys spiritual comfort, and causes tlie Lord to withdraw from the soul. Miserable is this condition, and yet it is often little observed or lamented, such is the hardness of the heart. BY JOHN RUNYAN. Ifi3 ened in their way, and had so drunk in the doctrine of Mr Car- nal-security, that the departing of tlicir prince touched thenx not, nor was he remembered by them when gone; and so of con- sequence his absence was not bewailed by them. Now there was a day wherein this old gentleman, MrCarnal- . , security, again made a feast for the town of ^^iclc put upon ^^^^^^^^^^ ^^^ ^^^^.g ^^^ ^^ ^^^^ jjj^^ jj^ ^^^^ Mr Godty-Jear. ^^^^^ ^^^ ^j^ Godly-fear; one now but little set by, tliough formerly one of great request. This man, old Carnal-security had a mind if possible, to gull and abuse as he did the rest, and therefore he now bids him to the feast with his neighbours. So the day being come, they prepared, and he ^ ^j_ « ^ goes and appears with the rest of the He pes to the feast, ^ ^^^, ^^^ ^^^ ^. ^,^^ ^^^^^^ ^,^^^ and sits there bke a ^^^ ^^^, ^^^^^^ ^^^ ^^^..^ ^^^^^^.^^ ^^^^ ^^ ^^^ stranger, ^^j^ ^^^^ ^^^^ ^^^^ ^j^. Godly-fear set like a stranger, and neither ate nor was merry); which when Mr Car- nal-security perceived, he addressed himself in a speech thus to him: ^ „ , --. " Mr Godly-fear are you not well? you Talk bet-ween Mr ^^^^ ^^ ^^ J .^^ ^^^ ^^ ^.^^ ^^ ^^^^^ Carnal.secupty and j ^^^^ ^ ^^^,^.^j ^^ ^j^ Forget-good's mak- Mr L.odly-Jear. .^^^ which. Sir, if you will take, I hope it may make you bonny and blithe, and so make you more fit for us feasting companions." Unto whom the good old gentleman discreetly replied: "Sir, I thank you for all things courteous and civil; but for your cordial, I have no list thereto. But a word to the natives of Man- soul: You the elders and chief of Mansoul, to me it is strange tc see you so jocund and merry, when the town of Manscul is in such woful case." Then said Mr Carnal-security, " You want sleep, good Sir, I doubt. If you please, lie down and take a nap, and we the mean while will be merry." Then said Mr Godly-fear as follows: *' Sir, if you were not destitute of an honest heart, you could not do as you have done, and do." Then said Mr Carnal-security, "Why?" Godly-fear. "Nay, pray interrupt me not. It is true, the town of Mansoul was strong and (with a proviso) impregnable; hut you have weakened it, and it now lies obnoxious to its foes; nor is it a time to be silent; it is you, Mr Carnal-security, that have stripped Mansoul, and driven her gloi'y from lier; you have pulled down her towers; you have broken down her gates, you have spoiled her locks and bars. 164 THE HOLY WAR. "And now to explain myself: From that time Ihat ray lord* Mr Godly-fear ex- °*' ^1='"^""^ «"*i y^^"' Sir, grew so' great, f^i : . 1 -If Irom that time the strength of Mansoul hai *^ •'* been offended; and now he is i-isen and is gone. If any shall question the truth of my words, I will answer him by this and such like questions: Where is the Prince Im- manuel? When did a man or woman in Mansoul see him? When did you hear from him, or taste any of his dainty bits? You are now a feasting with this Diitbolonian monster, but he is not your prince; I say, therefore, though enemies from without, had you taken heed, could not have made a prey of you, yet since you have sinned against your prince, your enemies within have been too hard for you, " Then said Mr Carnal-security, "Fie! fie! Mr Godly-fear, fie ! Will you never shake offyour timorousness? Are you afraid of being sijarrow-blasted? Who hath hurt you? Behold, 1 am on your side; only you are for doubting, and I am for being con- fident. Besides, is this a time to be sad in? A feast is made for mirth, why then do you now, to your shame and our trouble, break out into such passionate, melancholy language, when you should eat and drink, and be merry? Then said Mr Godly-fear again, "I may well be sad, for Im- manuel is gone from Mansoul: I say again, he is gone, and you, sir, are the man that has driven hiin away; yea, he is gone with- out so much as acquainting the nobles of j^lansoul with his going; and if that is not a sign of his anger, I am not acquainted with the metljods of godliness. "And now, my lords and gentlemen, my speech is still to you. His speech to ^°^ gi'^dually declining from him, provoked hinu the elders of f° ^^^part from you; the which he did gradually, jj^ . "^ if perhaps you M'ould have been made sensible thereby, and have been renewed by humbling yourselves: but when he saw that none would regard, or lay these fearful beginnings of his anger and judgment to heart, he went away from this place; and this I saw with mine own eyes. Wherefore now, while you boast, your strength is gone; you are like the man that lost his locks which before waved about his shoulders. You may, with this lord of your feast, shake your- selves and think to do as at otlier times; but since without him you can do nothing, and he is departed from you, turn your feast into a sigh, and your mirth into lamentation."* * Tlu- fear of God in the heart is placed tliere to prevent utter apostacy, and to detect that carn.il security which proves so mischievous. Godly-fear cannot enjoy that carnal mirlh (vliieh security provides, nor stupify himself BY JOHN BUN Y AN. \Q5 Then the subordinate preacher, old Mr Conscience Conscie7ice ^^ name, he that of old was recorder of Mansoul, startled. being startled at what was said, began to second it thus: Conscience. *' Indeed, my brethren, quoth he, I fear that Mr Godly-fear tells us true: I, for my part, have not seen my prince a long season. I cannot remember the day, for my part: nor can I answer Mr Godly-fear's question. I am afraid that all is nought with Mansoul." Godly-fear. *' Nay, I know that you will not find him in Mansoul, for he is dei^arted and gone; yea, and gone for the faults of the elders, and for tliat they rewarded his grace with unsufferable unkindness. " Then did the subordinate preacher look as if he would fall jj down dead at the table; also, all there present, ley are a except the man of the house, began to look pale agnas . ^^^ -wsiix. But having a little recovered them- selves, and jointly agreeing to believe Mr Godly-fear and his sayings, they began to consult what was best to be done [now Mr Carnal-secur'ty was gone into his withdrawing room, for he liked not such dumpish doings] both to the man of the house, for drawing them into evil, and also to I'ecover 'namanuel's love. Then the saying of their prince came very hot into their minds, , concerning tlie false prophets that should arise 1 hey consult ^^ delude the town of Mansoul. So they took and burn their ^^ Carnal-security (concluding that he was Jeast-maker. ^,^^ person) and burnt his house upon him with fire, for he also was a Diabolonian by nature.* When this was past and over, they bespeed / hey apply them- ^YvemseUes to look for Immanuel their prince, 'r^r' \^^\\^'^y Cant. v. 6, and " they sought him, but they L, host; but he IS ^^^^^ j^jj^ j^^j_ .„ ^j^gj^ ^^g^,g ^j^gy ^Q^g ^^j^_ grieved, Uc. fimied in the truthof Mr Godly-fear's sayings, and began also severely to reflect upon themselves for their vile and ungodly doings; for they concluded nov/, that their prince had left them. with Forg'et-good's cordial; but boldly remonstrates ag-ainst that gradual de- cline in religion which occasioned the Lord to withdraw his gracious presence: " So Samson, when his hair was lost, Met the Philistines to his cost; Shook his vain limbs with sad surprise, Made feeble fight and lost his eyts. JVatts. * Carnal-sf curity is such an enemy to the soul, that he sh.ould be utterly destroyed. When conscience is roused to oppose this deceitful foe, the busi- ness will be done; and measures will be taken to procure, if possible, the re- tarn of fcrltin-d blessings. 156 THE HOLY WAR. Then they agreed and went to my lord Secretary, whom be- fore they retused to hear, and liad grieved with their doings, to know of him (for he was a seer, and could tell where Imman- uel was) how they might direct a petition to him.. But the lord Secretary would not admit them to a conference about this mat- ter, nor M'ould admit them to his royal palace, nor come out to them, Isa. Ixiii. 10. Eph. iv. 30. 1 Thess. v. 19. Now was it a day gloomy and dark, a day of clouds and of thick darkness with Mansoul. Now they saw that they had been foolish, and began to perceive v.'hat the company and prattle of Mr Carnal-security had done, and what desperate damage his swaggering words had brought poor Mansoul into: but what further it was likely to cost them, that they were ignorant of. Now Mr Godly-fear began to be in great repute with the men of the town; yea, they were ready to look upon him as a prophet. Well, when the sabbath-day was come, they went to hear their a ,, , . subordinate preacher; but oh, how did it thunder A thundering i i- i. .i ■ j i u- * 4. *i .. • *i •^ and lighteai this day ! His text was that in the prophet Jonah, "They that observe lying vanities, forsake their own mercies," ch. ii. 8. But there was then such power and authority in that sermon, and such a dejection seen in the countenances of the people that day, that the like hath seldom been heard or seen. The people, when sermon was done, were scarce able to go to their homes, or to betake them- selves tu their employs the v/eek after; they wei-e so sermon- smitten, and also so sermon sick, that they knew not what to do, ,—, , ,. Hos. vi. 13. He not only showed Mansoul brfacheraJ'^^*^ their sin, but trembled before them under the ^ ■ ' sense of his own, still crying out of himself, as icnovnedges us ^^ preached to them, " Unhappy man that I am ! jauu and be- ^^^^ j should do a wicked thing ! that I,a preach- xvailn his com- , , ., . i- i .. ^ ^ i aV i .. _., er! whom the prince did setup to teach Mansoul ".^ „ '"' * his law, sliould myself live senseless and sot- J\lr Larnal-se- tishly here, and be one of the first found in '^"' ^ ^' transgression ! This transgression also fell with- in my precincts: I should have cried out against the wickedness; but 1 let Mansoul lie wallowing in it, until it had driven Im- nianuel from its borders. " With these things he also charged all the lords and gentry of Mansoul, to the almost distracting ot them, Psahn Ixxxviii. About this time also there was a great sickness in the town of Mansoul, and most of the inhabitants were A great sickness j^peatlv afflicted: yea, the captains also aud in Mansoul. -^^^^ jj. ^^^^ ^^.^^.^ brought thereby to a lae guishing condition, and that for a long time together; so that »» BY JOHN BUNYAN. 167 case of an invasion, nothing could to purpose now have been done, either by the townsmen or field officers, Heb. xii. 12, 13. Rev, iii. 2. Isa. iii. 24. Oh, how many pale faces, weak hands, feeble knees, and staggering men, were now seen to walk the streets of Mansoul! Here were groans, there pants, and yonder lay those that were ready to faint. The garments too, which Immanuel had given them, were but in a sorry case; some were re'.it, some were torn, and all in a nasty condition; some also hung so loosely upon them, that the ne\t bush they came at was ready to pluck tliem off. After some time spent in this sad and desolate condition, the subordinate preacher called for a day of fasting, and to humble themselves for being so wicked against the great Shaddai and his Son: and he desired that Captain Boanerges Boanerges ^youjj preach; which he consented to do: and the preaches 111 ^^^^ ^^j^^ ^^^^^ j^;^ ^^^^ ^^,^g ^j^i^. « q^^ j^ ^own; Mansoul. ^^j^^^ cumbereth it the ground.'" and a very smart sermon he made upon the text. First, he showed what was the occasion of the words, to wit, "because the fig-tree was barren." Then he showed what was contained in the sentence, to wit, repentance or utter desolation. He next showed by whose authority this sentence was pronounced, and that was by Shad- dai himself. And lastly, he showed the reasons of the point: and then concluded his sermon. But he was very pertinent in the application, insomuch that he made poor Mansoul tremble: for this sermon as Avell as the former, wrought much upon the hearts of the men of Mansoul; yea, it greatly helped to keep awake those that were roused by the preaching that went before; so that now throughout the whole town there was little or noth- ing to be heard or seen but sorrow, and mourning, and wo.* Now after sermon they got together, and consulted what was , best to be done. But, said the subordinate preach- Ihey consult ^^^ j ^^jjj ^^ nothing of my own head, without ad- ■what to do. ^jgj^^^ ^^,j^,^ ^^^, neighbour Mr Godly-fear. So they called and sent for Mr Godly-fear, and he forthwith appear- ed. Then they desired that he would further show his opinion about what they had best to do: Avhereupon the old gentlemen said as foUoweth; "It is my opinion that this town of Mansoul should, in this day of her distress, draw up and send an humble petition to their offended prince Immanuel, that he, in favour * Boanerges, who was one of the first messengers to the town, had with- drawn, and mildt r preachers were introduced, as more suited to the state of Mansoul; but now they need to be roused from their sloth, and Boanerges preaches again. In times ofspiritual declension awakening sermons are very useful. 168 THE HOLY WAR. and grace, will turn again unto them, and not keep his anger forever. " When the townsmen had heard this speech, they unanimously agreed to his advice; so they jjresently drew up their request^ Thcv ^t>nd t1 p ^^^ *^^ next question was. But who shall car- Lord-maiior to ""^ '^- ^^ ^^'^ ^'"-'^^ ^^"^ '^S''^^^ ^° '^"^ '^ •'>' ""^ . ^ Lord-mayor, who accepted the service, and ad- dressed himself to his journey; after which, he came to the court of Shaddai, whither Immanuel the prince of Mansoul was gone, Lam. iii, 8,44; but the gale was shut, and a strict watch kept thertat; so that the petitioner was forcf-d to stand without for a great while together. Then he desired that som would go in to the prince, and tell liim who stood at the gate, and also what his business was. Accordingly one went and told Shaddai and Immanuel his son, that the Lord-mayor of the town of iMansoul stood without at the gate of the king's court, desiring to be admitted into the presence of tne prince, the king's son. He also told the Lord-mayor's errand both to the king and his son Immanuel. But the prince would not come down, nor ad- mit that the gate should be opened, but sent an answer to this effect, Jer. ii. 27, '28. "They have turned their back unto me, and not their face; but now, in the time of their trouble, they say unto me, Arise and save us. But can they not now go to Mr Car- nal-security, to whom they went when they turned from me, and make him their leader, their lord, and their protector? And now in their trouble they visit me, from whom in their prosper- ity they went astray." This answer made my Lord-mayor look black in the face; it troubled, it perplexed, it rent him sore, Lara. iv. 7, 8. And now he began to see w hat it was to be familiar with Diabolonians, such as Mr Carnal-security was. When he saw that at court The lord mail ^^^ ^^^^ ^^^^^'^ ^'^^ ^^"^^ '^''^P ^^ ^^ expected, ei- or returns and ^^^^^ ^f] •""^^^^^" «^' ^^^-^"^^ ''^ Mansoul; he smote 7 upon his breast and returned weeping, and all the way bewailing the lamentable state of Mansoul. When he was come within sight of the town, the elders and chief of the people of Mansoul went out at the gate to meethim, and to salute him, and to know how he sped at court. But he rn * ^ r told themhis tale in so doleful a manner, that they all I lie state of • , , , i . . -,»•, i T,^ , •' cried cut and mourned and wept. \\ herefore Jylansoiilno-tv. ,, ^, , i , ^ ii • i j i they threw ashes and dust upon their heads, and put sackcloth upon their loins, and went crying out through the town of Mansoul; which when the rest of the townsfolk saw, they all mourned and wept. This therefore was a day of re- BY JOHN BUNYAN. 169 buke, trouble and anguish to the town of Mansoul, and also of great distress. After some time, when they had somewhat recovered them- They again con- ^^^7^' they came together to consult again .xdtG^dhj-fear. ^^^at was yet to be done; and they asked ad- ^ '' vice, as tliey did before, of the Rev. Mr God- ly-fear; who told them, that there was no way better to do than to do as they had done, nor Avould he that they sbould be dis- couraged at all with what they had met with at court; yea, though several of their petitions should be answered with naught but si- lence or rebuke; for, said he, it is the way of the Avise Shaddai to make men wait, and to exercise patience; and it should be the way of them in want to be willing to stay his leisure. See now -what Then they took courage, and sent again and again, • .7 . /. and again and again; for there was not a day nor an ^ kl, J" r ];,.{, hour, that went over Mansoul's head, wherein a a oacfcsliamp- • j^. ^ i ^ i „ „^,- * 7 ^^^^ might not have met upon the road one or saint axvak^.n- ,, .°,. , ^ ^r i . i ^ J other riding post from Mansoul to the court of king Shaddai, and all with letters petitionary in Groaning' de- ^^'^^^^ °^' ^"^^ for the prince's return, to Mansoul. ^ ' The rosd, I sav, was now full of messenarers, s;o- ing and returning, and meeting one another; some from the court, and some from Mansoul; and this was the work of the miserable town of Mansoul all that long, that sharp, that cold and tedious winter.* A memento ^°^ ^ °^ "^^^ remember that I told you before * that after Immanuel had taken Mansoul, yea, and after he had new modelled the town, there remained, in several lurking places of the corporation, many of the old Diabolonians, that either came with the tyrant when he invaded and took the town, or that had there (by reason of unlawful mixtures in their birth, breeding, and bringing up) their holes, dens, and lurking places in, under, or about the walls of the town; some of their names are, the Lord Fornication, the Lord Adultery, the Lord Murder, the Lord Anger, the Lord Lasciviousness, the Lord De- ceit, the Lord Evil-eye, the Lord Blasphemy, and that horrible villain the old and dangerous Lord Covetousness; these, with many more, had yet their abode in the town of ^Lnnsoul, even after Immanuel had driven Diabolus out of the castle. Against these the good prince granted a commission to the * Prayer, at all times necessary, becomes peculiarly seasonable when a state of backsliding is discovered. Prayer may not immediately receive an answer, nor forfeited comfort return; but as Godly-fear said, there is no bitter way than to pray and pray again, and wait the Lord's pleasure. P irO THE HOLY WAR. Lord Will-be- will and others, yea, to the whole town of Man- soul, to seek, take, secure, and destroy, any or all that they could lay hands of; for that they were IDiabolonians by nature, enemies to the prince, and those who sought to ruin the blessed T,_ ,7 7 7 town of Mansoul. But Mansoul did not pursue JMansoul heeded . . ^ x. 4. 1 4. 1 * 11 ^ ^, ^ . , this warrant, but nesflected to ap])rehend, se- not the princess 11* .1 i-k- 1 1 • 1 r ^ , ^ cure, and (iestroy those Uiabolonians; wheretore caution, nor put , ' , ^. n • u ^ 1 1 ^ ^ ,. . .^ . what do these villains, but by dejjrees take his commissio7iin ^ , ^, , ^ ^1 • 1 1 • courage to show themselves to the inhabitants execxction. ^^ ^^^^ ^^^^^. ^,^^^ ^^^^ ^^ j ^^^^ ^^^^^ ^^^^^ ^^ the men of Mansoul grew too familiar with several of them, to the sorrow of tbe corporation, as you will hear more in time and place.* CHAPTER XIII. The Diabolonians take courage from the departure of Immanuel, and plots are formed, in concert with Hell, for a counter-revolution in Mansoul. Co- vetousness, Lasciviousness, and Anger, by changing their names, are intro- duced into respectable families, where they corrupt their masters and do in- credible mischief. An army of twenty thousand Doubters is raised to sur- prise the town. WHEN the Diabolonian lords perceiA'ed that Mansoul had, through sinning, offended. Iramanuel their prince, and that he had withdrawn himself and was gone, what do they but plot the rr,, r,- J , ruiu of Mansoul ? Accordingh^ the>' met together The Diabolo- ^ ,, , , , r at at- ?• r 1 t^- , , at the hold 01 one Mr Mischiet, Avho was a Uia- " ■ bolonian, and here consulted how they might de- liver up Mansoul into the hands of Diabolus again. l!iowf some advised one way, and some another, every man according to his own liking. At last my Lord Lasciviousness proposed, that some of the Diabolonians in Mansoul should offer themselves for servants to some of the natives of the town; for, said he, if they do so, and Mansoul shall accept of them, they may for us, and for Diabolus our lord, make the taking of the town of Man- soul more easy than otherwise it would be. But then stood up the lord Murder, and said, This may not be done at this time, • When Mansoul first received Iramanuel, a strict charge was given to dis- cover and destroy the Diabolonians; but this was too much neglected: the consequence v.as, that they became to Mansoul what the Canaanites were to Israel, according to the i)rediciion, Numb, xxxiii. 5b. " If ye will not drive out the inhabitants of the land from before you, then shall it come to pass, that those which ye let remain of them shall be pricks in your eyes, and thorns in your sides, and shall vex you in the land wherein ye dwell." BY JOHN BUNYAN. 171 for Mansoul is now in a kind of rage, because, by our friend Mr Carnal-security sbe hath been once ensnared ah'eady, and made to offend against her prince; and hoAv shall she reconcile herself unto her lord again, but by the heads of these men? Besides, we know that they have in commission to take and slay us where- ever they shall find us; let us thex-efore be wise as foxes: when we are dead, we can do them no hurt; but while we live, we may. Thus when they had tossed the matter to and fro, they jointly ™, , agreed that a letter should forthwith be sent Theti send to " ^ t^- i i • ^i • i u- i, .u 1 11 f , 1 ■ away to Uiabolus m their name, by which the J ' state of the town of Mansoul should be show- ed him, and how much it is under the frowns of their prince; we may also, said some, let him know our intentions, and ask his advice in the case. So a letter was presently framed, the con- tents of which were these: *' To our great lord, the Pmnce Diabolus, dtuelling beloto in the Infernal cave. *' O great father, and mighty prince Diabolus, we the true Dia- bolonians, yet remaining in the rebellious town of Mansoul, hav- ing received our beings from thee, and our nourishment at thy hands, cannot with content and quiet endure to behold, as we do this day, how thou art dispraised, disgraced and reproached among the inhabitants of this town; nor is thy long absence at all delightful to us, because greatly to our detriment. " The reason of this our writing to our Lord is, that we are not altogether without hope that this town may become thy habitation again: for it is greatly declined from its prince Im- manuel, and he is departed from them; yea, and though they send and send after him, to return to them, yet can they not prevail, nor get good words from him. " There has been also of late, and is yet remaining, a very great sickness and faintings among them; and that not only upon the poorer sort of the town, but upon the lords, captains, and chief gentry of the place; [we only, who are Diabolonians by nature, remain well, lively and strong]; so that through their great transgression on one hand, and their dangerous sickness on the other, we judge they lie open to thy hand and power. If ™, therefore it shall stand with thy horrible cun- 1 J! ^j. nin?5 and with the cunning of the rest of the second attempt .° -^u ^i ^ ^ i ^r princes with thee, to come and make an at- asramst JMan- ^ ^^^tut ^ • j i ^ . tempt to take Mansoul again, send us word, and we shall to our utmost power be ready to 172 THE HOLY WAR. deliver it into thrliand. Or if what we have said shall not be thought best and most meet to be done, send us thy mind in a few words, and Ave are all ready to follow thy counsel, to the hazard of our lives, and what else we have. " Given under our hands this day and date above written, after a close consultation at the house of Mr Mischief, who is yet alive, and hath his place in our desirable town ot Mansoul. ■.f -n f • When IMr Profane (for he was the carrier) . *', was come witn his letter to Hellgate-hiU, he , . ■ , , ^^ knocked at the sate for entrance. Then did brmsrs the letter „ , . , n- ^ ^11 r ^ ir 11 . I -77 Cerberus the porter (tor he was the keeper ot to Hellscate-hilL , ^ ^ . ^ at r» r ^ 1 i! i J ^ ^ _, .^' that eate) open to Mr rrotane; to whom he de- and presents It ,. , v- 1 4.^. i- i 1 1 i\ ^ .. c .v. * /-I I. ^7 livered his letter which he had brought from the to Cerberus the -r-vt^i • -^r 1 ou -i-..- JJiabolonians in Mansoul. bo he carried it in, and presented it to Diabolus his lord, and said, Tidings, ray lord, from Mansoul^ and from our trusty friends in Mansoul. Then came together Beelzebub, Lucifer, Apollyon, with the rest of the rabble there, to hear what news from Mansoul. So the letter was read and Cerberus stood by. When the letter was openly read, and the contents thereof spread into all the corners of the den, command w^as given, that without lett, -, , ,7 7, or stop, Deadman's bell should be rung for Deadmens bell. . o \.i i. n j -u • ,, . ' loy. So the bell was rung, and the princes re- and how It -went. ■ • ^ .\ .-%.r 1 11 * * joiced that Mansoul was like to come to ruin. Now the clapper of the bell went, " The town of Mansoul is coming to dwell with us; make room lor Mansoul." This bell, therefore, they rang, because they hoped that they should have Mansoul again.* Now when thej' had performed this their horrible ceremony, they got together again, to consult what answer to send to their friends in Mansoul; and some advised one thing, and some another; but at length, because the business required haste, they left the whole business to Diabolus, judging him the most proper lord of the place. Sn he drew up a letter in answer to wbat Mr Profane had brought, and sent it to tlieDiabolonians in Mansoul, by the same hand that brought their's to him; and these were the con- tents thereof: * Wilful depai-tnre from God gives courage to our spiritual foes, who re- joice in the hope of making backsliders apostates. Satan will renew his temp- tations witli double force; while lasciviousuess, murder, and mischief will unite with him in cunning devices to ruin the soul. I]Y JOHN nUNYAN. 173 " To our Offsprings the high and mighty niabolonians that yet t . J- d~cvell in the toion of Mansoul; Diabolus, the Biabohisto the S'^^"-* Prince of Mansoul, ivisheth a properous Diabolonians issue and conclusion of those many brave en- his servants in ^^''/"'^'*^*» conspiracies, and designs, that you, A.f„,.c^,.'i ^/ 2/^'"' ^*^^ «'"^ respect to our honour, have in your hearts to attempt to do against Mansoul. " Beloved children and disciples, my Lord Fornication, Adultery, and the rest; Ave have here, in our desolate den, re- ceived, to our highest joy and content, your welcome letter, by the hand of our trusty Mr Profane; and to show how acceptable vour tidings were, we rang out our bell for gladness; for we re- joiced as much as we could, when we perceived that yet we had friends in Mansoul, and such as sought our honour and re- venge in the ruin of the town of Mansoul. We also rejoiced to hear that they are in a degenerate condition, have offended their prince, and that he is gone. Their sickness also pleaseth us, as does also your health, might, and strength. Glad also would we be, right hoi-ribly beloved, could we get this town into our clutches again. Nor will we be sparing of our wit, cunning, craft, and hellish inventions, to bring to a wished conclusion this your brave beginning. "And take this for your comfort, our birth and offspring, that if we again surprise and take it, we will attempt to put all your foes to the sword, and make you the great lords and cap- tains of the place. Nor need you fear (if ever we get it ae,ain) that we after that shall be cast out any more; for we will come with more strength, and so take faster hold than we did at first. Besides, it is the law of that prince, Avhich now they own, that if we get them a second time, they shall beour's for ever. Matt, xii. 43 — 45. " Do you therefore, our trusty Diabolonians, yet more pry into and endeavour to spy out, tlie weakness of the town of Man- soul. We would also that you yourselves do attempt to weaken them more and more. Send us word also by Avhat means we had best to attempt the regaining thereof, to wit, whether by persuasion to a vain and loose life; by tempting them to doubt and despair; or by blowing up the town by the gunpowder of pride and self-conceit.* Do you also, O ye brave Diabolonians, and true sons of the pit, be always in a readiness to make a most hor- * These means of destruction are proposed in heli: 1. A Vicious life. 2. De- gpair of mercy. 3. Prevailing^ pride; either of these would prove our ruin. But grace prevents. P i r74 THE HOLY WAR. rid assault within, when we shall be ready to storm it without. Now speed you in your project, and we in our desires, the ut- most power of our gates, which is the wish of your great Diabolus, Mansoul's enemy, and him that trembles when he thinks of judgment to come. All the blessing of the pit be upon you! and so we close up our letter. " Given at the Pit's Mouth, by the joint consent of all the princes of darkness, to be sent (to the force and power that we have vet remaining in Mansoul) bv the hand of Mr Pro- fane. ' "By'me, DIABOLUS." This letter was sent to the Diabolonians that yet i-emained in Mansoul, and that yet inhabited the Avail, from the dark dunge- on of Diabolus, by the hand of Mr Profane, by whom they also in Mansoul sent their's to the pit. Now when this Mr Profane „ r returned to Mansoul, he came, as he was wont, Profane comes . ^, , ^ •^ . 1 J f they can, make Mansoul yet morevde; no way give to the letter. ^^ ^j^s^^^y ^ ^^^^ y^^^ ^l^js. 0^^. qJ j f,.ie,j^i Balaam ■went this way, and prospered many years ago. Numb. xxxi. 16. Rev. ii. 14. Let this therefore stand with us for a maxim, and be _ .^ , to Diabolonians for a general rule in all ages; for noth- lAicijer *^j^i,^ocan make this to fail but grace, in which I Mould speec . j^Qpg ^1^.^^- this town has no share. But Avhether to fall upon them on a market-day, because of their cumber in busi- ness, that I would should be under debate. And there is niore reason why this head should be debated, than why some other should; because upon this will turn the wliole of what Me shall attempt. If we time not ovir business Avell, our whole project may fail. Our friends the Diabolonians say, that a market-day is best, for then will Mansoul be most busy, and have fewest thoughts of a surprise. But what if they shall double their guards on those days (and methinks nature and reason should teach them to do it'') and what if they should keep such a watch on those days, as the necessity of their present case requir-es^ Yea, what if their men should be always in arms in those days? Then you may, my lords, be disappointed at your attempts, and may bring our friends in the town to utter danger of un- avoidable ruin.* Beelzebub. Then said the great Beelzebivb, There is some- * "Learn wisdom from the devil. Nature and reason should teach men to be doubly on their guard wlien much engaged in the world — on market-days; BY JOHN BUNYAN. 181 n J f, !.■> thing in what my lord hath said, but his conjecture Beelzebub s ^^^ ^^ ^^^ ^^^ ^^^ ^^^ ^^^ ,^^^,^ ^^. j^^.^j j^j ^ j^. speecu down as that which must not be receded from: for I knoAV thathe said it only to provoke a warm debate thereabout. Therefore we must understand, if we can, whether the town of Mansoul has such sense and knowledge of her decayed state, and of the designs that we have on foot against her, as to set watch and ward at her gates, and to double them on market- days. But if after inquiry made, it shall be found that they are asleep, then any day will do, but a market-day is best? and this is my judgment. JDiabolus. Then quoth Diabolus, How shall we know this? And it was answered. Inquire about it at the mouth of Mr Pro- fane. So Profane was called in, and asked the question, and he made his answer as follows: Profane. My lords so far as I can gather, this is at present n f , J the condition of the town of Mansoul: they are I^rojane s Oe- ^j^^^^^,^^ -^^ ^j^gi^. f^^j^ ^nd love; Immanuel, scnption oj the ^j^gj^. pj-i^ee, has given them the back; they send present state oJ ^^.^.^^^ ^^ petition to fetch him again, but he ansoui. makes no haste to answer their request; nor is there mucli reformation among them. Diabolus, I am glad that they are backward to a reformation, but yet I am afraid of their petitioning. However, their looseness of life is a sign that there is not much heart in what they do, and without the heart things are little worth.* But, go on my masters, I will divci't you, my lords, no longer. Beelzebub. If the case be so with Mansoul, as Mr Profane has described it to be, it will be no great matter what day we assault it; not their prayers nor their power will do them much service. When Beelzebub had ended his oration, then Apollyon began, j^ in 1 1 My opinion, said he, concerning this matter is, nreaupu an- ^^^^ ^^^ ^^ ^^ ^.^j^ ^^^ softly, not doing things in vice against ^ ijm,j.y. Let our friends in Mansoul go on still JUansoiil. ^^ pollute and defile it, by seeking to draw it yet more into sin (for there is nothing like sin to devour Mansoul.) If this be done, and takes effect, Mansoul itself will leave off to watch, petition, or any thing else, that should tend to her secu- <'Men should be always in arms on those days." Would to God this hint were duly regarded in the country on market-days, and in London always, where every day in the week is market-day! * Good reasoninf^. Looseness of life is a proof that, whatever of reli^on men may profess, tliere is not much heart in itj and if not, it is of little worth, and will do them little service. Q 182 THE HOLY WAR. rity and safety; for she will forget lier Ivnmanuel, she will not desire his company; and can she be gotten thus to live, herprince will not come to her in haste. Our trusty friend, Mr .Carnal- security, with one of his tricks, di'ove him out of the town; and why may not my Lord Covetousness, and my Lord Lascivious- ness, by what they may do, keep him out of the town?* And this I will tell you (not because you know it not, but) that two or three Diabolouians, if entertained and countenanced by the town of Mansoul, will do more to the keeping Immanuel from them, and towards making the town our own, than an army or a legion- that should be sent out from us to withstand him. Let, therefore, this first project that our friends in Mansoul „ ,, . have set on foot, be strongly and diligently P if s carried on with all cunning and craft imagina- kis advice that , , j i ^ ^. ^ \- ^^ ^ ^, 111 ble; and let them send continually under one theii should car- . ^, , ,, (.\, . •^ ^, guise or other, more and other oi their men to rii on the ivar ^, -^u ^. ^ c-\t i i ^u th ' ft I pi^y with the people of Mansoul; and then per- ., J haps we shall not need to be at the charge of •^ ' making a war upon them; or if that must of necessity be done, yet the more sinful they are, the less able they will be to resist us, and then the more easily we shall over- come them. And besides, suppose (and that is the Avorst that can be supposed) that Immanuel should come to them again, Avhy may not the same means (or the like) drive him from them once more? Yea, why may he not, by their lapse into that sin again be driven from them for ever, for the sake of which he was at the first driven from them for a season? And if this should hap- pen, then away will go with him his i^ams, his slings, his cap- tains, his soldiers, and he leaveth Mansoul naked and bare. Yea, will not this town, when she sees herself utterly forsaken of her prince, of her own accord open her gates again unto you? But this must be done by time, a few days will not effect so great a work as this.f When Apollyon had made an end of speaking, Diabolus began to blow out his own malice, and plead his own cause, and _,. , , he said, My lords and powers of the cave, my Diaholus can ^ \ ^ . c ■ i t i -.i i, • , , , , true and trustv iriends, 1 nave with much im- oroofc no delay, ,. , ' • ^ , , // . patience, as becomes me, given ear to your long '. *, ^ ' ' , and tedious orations. But ray furious gorge mined to retake , . u i * n ^ ° .° , . and empty paunch so lustetn alter a repossession the town imme- ^^ ^^ famous town of Mansoul, that whatever "■ comes on it, I can wait no longer to see the • Very true, though said by the father of lies. Sin will do more to hurt the loul than a legion of devils. t Apostacy is often a gradual affair, a sure poison, but slow. BY JOHN BUNYAN. 183 events of lingering projects. I must, and that without further delay, seek by all means I can, to fill my unsatiahle gulf with the soul and body of the town of JMansoul. Therefore lend me your heads, your hearts, and your helps, now I am going to re- cover my town of Mansoul. When the lords and princes of the pit saw the flaming desire that was in Diabolus to devour the miserable town of Mansoul, they left off to raise any more objections, but consented to lend him what strength they could: though, had Apollyon's advice been taken, they had far more fearfully distressed the town of Mansoul. But I say, they were willing to lend hira w hat strength they could, not knowing what need they might have of hira, Avhen they should engage for themselves, as he. Wherefore tliey fell to devising about the nextthingpropounded; to wit, what soldiers they were, and also how many, with w hom Diabolus should go against tlie town of Mansoul, to take it; and, after some debate, it was concluded, according as in the letter the Diabolonians had suggested, that none Avas more fit for that expedition, than an army of terrible doubters. They therefore concluded to send against Mansoul an army of sturdy Doubters. The number thought fit to be employed in that service was between twenty and thirty thousand.* So then the i-esult of that great council of those high and mighty lords was. That Diabolus should ^ even now out of hand beat up his drum for men ^71 army oj .^ ^^^ j^^^ of Doubting, which land lieth upon Doubters raised ^^^ confines of the place called Hellgate-hill, ^^ a^az/zs ^^^ ^^^^ ^^^^ might be employed by him against TUT ^^^^?^ themiserable town of Mansoul. It was also cod- JVLansQXiL eluded, that these lords themselves should help . „ him in the war, and that they would, to that I he princes oj ^^^^^ ^^^^ ^^^ manage his men. So they drew he pit go -with ^p ^ letter, and sent it back to the Diabolonians '^^'"' that lurked in Mansoul, and that waited for .oe coming back of Mr Profane, to signify to them into what method they had put theii- design. The contents w hereof follow ^^From the dark and horrible dungeon of Hell, Diabolus, tvith all the society of the princes of darkness, sends to our trusty ones, in and about the ivalls of tlie totvn of J\Iansoul, now im- patiently ivaiting for our most devilish ans-wer to their venomous and most poisonous design against tlie toiun of JSIanspu.. * ^V^len the enemy has so far prevailed by temptation, that sin has been ^nteitaine.d in the soul, as lasciviousness and covetousness, tlien is the time to pour into the soul a crowd of distressing doubts respecting our own salvatipn; 2Jid this is the natural and usual counsequence of sin indulged. 184 THE HOLY WAR. " Our native ones, in whom from day to day we boast, and in whose actions all the year long we greatly delight ourselves: we I'eceived your welcome, because highly esteemed letter, at the hand of our trusty and greatly beloved, the old gentleman, Mr Profane; and do give you to understand, that when we had broken it up, and had read the contents thereof (to your amazing memory be it spoken) our yawning hollow-bellied place where we are, made so hideous and yelling a noise for joy, tliat the mountains that stand round about Hellgate-hill had like to have been shaken to pieces at the sound thereof. " We could also do no less than admire your faithfulness to us, with the greatness of that subtlety that now hath showed itself to be in your heads to serve us against the town of Mansoul. For you have invented for us so excellent a method for our pro- ceeding against that rebellious people, that a more effectual can- not be thought of by all the wits of hell. The proposals therefore which now at last you have sent us, since we saw them, we have done little else but highly approved and admired them. "Nay, we shall, to encourage you in the profundity of your craft, let you know, that at a full assembly and conclave of our princes and principalities of this place, your project was dis- coursed and tossed from one side of our cave to the other by their mightinesses; but a better, and, as was by themseWes judg- ed, a more fit and proper way, by all their wits could not be in- vented, to suprise, take, and make our own, the rebellious town of Mansoul. "Wherefore, in fine, all that was said that varied from what you had in your letter propounded, fell of itself to the ground, and yours only was stuck to by Diabolus the princej yea, his gaping gorge and yawning paunch was on fire to put your invention into execution. "We therefore give you to understand, that our stout, furi- o r ous, and unmerciful Diabolus, is raising for An army of more ' ,. ,. , ^, . .-^u . ,,• , ^, ^ / ^i your reliei, and the rum ot the rebellious toNvn inan twenty thoii- -^ .,^. ' ^i ^ ^ ^i j t^ w 7T-. 7. ^ ot Mansoul, more tlian twenty tUousana Uoubt- sand Doubters to ^ • ^ .1 ^ 1 n-i n . ,- ers to come against that people. 1 hey are all ^ j^ stout and sturdy men, and men that of old have been accustomed to war. 1 say, he is do- ing this work of his, with all the speTKd he can, for with his heart and spirit he is engaged in it. We desire, therefore, that as you have hitherto stuck to us, and given us both advice and en- couragement, you still will pi'osecute our design, nor shall you lose, but be gainers thereby; yea, we intend to make you the lords of Mansoul. BY JOHN BUNYAN. ISa ** One thing may not by any means be omitted, that is, those with us desire, that every one of you that are in Mansoul would still use all your power, cunning, and skill, -with delusive per- suasions, yet to draw the town of iNIansoul into more sin and wickednesSj even that sin may be finished, and bring forth death. " For thus it is concluded with us, that the more vile, sinful and debauched the town of Mansoul is, the more backward will their Immanuel be to come to their help, either by presence, or other relief: yea, the more sinful, the more weak, and so the more unable will they be to make resistance, when we shall make our assault upon them to swallow them up. Yea, they may cause that their mighty Shaddai hi^nself may cast them out of his protection; yea, and send for his captains and soldiers home, with his slings and rams, and leave them naked and bare, and then the town of JMansoul will of itself open to us, and fall as a fig into the mouth of the eater. Yea, to be sure that we then with a great deal of ease shall come upon her, and over- come her. " As to the time of our coming upon Mansoul, we as yet have ,- 7- . 7 not fully resolved upon that, though at pre- JMansoul IS to be as- , ■' c lu- ^ ^ .,^,, *\.,^¥ „ . , , ,, .,, sent some of us think, as you, that a saulted both -with- i » i i «- ^ „+ • v,<. „.;ii , ... market-day,or a market-day at night, will out and xvit/un. . , / i , * tt i <*"'"". certainly be the best.* However, do you be ready, and when you shall hear our roaring drum without, do you be as busy to make the most hori'ible confusion Avithin, 1 Pet. v. 8; so shall jNIansoul certainly be distressed before and behind, and shall not know which way to betake herself for help. My Lord Lucifer, my Lord Beelzebub, my Lord Apollyon, my Lord Legion, with the rest, salute you, as does also my Lord Diabolus; and we wish both you, with all that you do or shall possess, the very self-same fruit and success for your doing, as we ourselves at present enjoy for ours. "From our dreadful confines in the most fearful pit, we salute you, and so do those many legions here with us, wishing you may be as hellishly prosperous as we desire to be ourselves. By the letter-carrier, Mr Profane." Then Mr Profane addressed himself for his return to Man- soul, with his errand from the horrible pit to the Diabolomans that dwelt in that town. So he came up the stairs from the deep to the mouth of the cave where Cei-berus was. Now when Cer- * A market-day at night. At that season how many tradesmen are full of the world; and too many, who visit markets from the country, "overcha.>ed with surfeiting, drunkenness, and the cares of this lifel" " JJe sober, be vigi- lant.'' 1 Pet. V. 8. Q 2 186 THE HOLY WAR. berus saw him, he asked how matters went below, about and against the toAvn of Mansoul. Profane. Things go as well as we can expect. The letter ^ ^. , that I carried thither was highly approved, Conversatioji be- , ,, ,., , , ,, i i it . , , and well liked by all my lords, and lam re- tiveen the keeher ^ . . ^ i, t^- i i • t u .... ■' . turning to tell our Diabolonians so. 1 have •( '^ ' . an answer to it here in my bosom, that lam tne bearer of the -n i . \i 4. ^ 1 j . •' sure Mill make our masters that sent me, glad; for the contents thereof are to encourage them to pursue their design to the utmost, and to be ready also to fall on within, when they shall see my Lord Diabolus be- leaguering of the town of JNIansoul. Cerberus. But does he intend to go against them himself? Profane. Does he? Ay, and he will take along with hina more than twenty thousand, all sturdy Doubters and men of war, picked men from the land of Doubting, to serve him in the ex- ])edition. Cerberus. Then was Cerberus glad, and said. And are there such brave preparations a making to go against the miserable town of Mansoul? And would 1 might be put at the head of a thousand of them, that I might also show my valour against the famous town of Mansoul. Profane. Your wish may come to pass, you look like one that has mettle enough, and my lord will have with him those that are valiant and stout. But my business requires haste. Cerberus. Ay, so it does. Speed thee to the town of Man- soul, with all the deepest mischiefs that this place can afford thee. And when thou shalt come to the house of Mr Mischief, the place where the Diabolonians meet to plot, tell them that Cerberus doth wish them his service, and that if he diay, he will with the army come up against the famous town of Mansoul. Profane. That I will. And 1 know that my lords that are there will be glad to hear it, and to see you also. So after a few more such kind of compliments, Mr Profane ,_,, took leave of !iis friend Cerberus; and Cerberus J he messenger, j^ ^^.^^^ ^ thousand of their pit wishes, bid J\lr Profane, i- 1 . -.^i n 1 .. i,- 4. t-u ' ' him haste with all speed to his masters. The Proceeds on his ,., , 1111 i> . , • ^ ^ . which when he had heard he made obesiancc, and began to gather up his heels to run. Thus therefore he returned, and came to Mansoul, and going as afore to the house of Mr Mischief, there he found the Dia- Ijolonians, assembled, and waiting for his return. Now when he was come, and had presented himself, he delivered his letter and adjoined his compliment to them therewith: My lords, froiii BY JOHN liUNYAN. 187 the confines of the pit, the high and miglity principalities and pow = ers of the den salute you here, the true Diabolonians of the town of Mansoui: wishing you always the most proper of their bene- diction, for the great service, high attempts, and brave achieve- ments, that you have put yourselves upon, for the restoring to our prince Diabolus the famous town of Mansoul. This was therefore the present state of the miserable town of Manscul. She had offended her prince, and he was gone; she had encouraged the powers of hell, by her foolishness, to come against her to seek her utter destruction. True, the town of Mansoul was somewhat made sensible of her sin, buttlie Diabolonians were gotten into her bowels; she cried, but Immanuel was gone, and her cries did not fetch him as yet again. State of the to-wn of j\Tansoiil at this critical June- t> • i i i ^ i_ .1 •^ Besides, she knew not whether ever or never he would return, and come to his Mansoul again; nor did they know the power and industry of the enemy, nor how forward they were to put in execution that plot ©f hell that they had devised against her. They did indeed still send petition after petition to the prince, but he answered all with silence. They did neglect reforma- tion, and that was as Diabolus would have it; for he knew, if they regarded iniquity in their heart, their king would not re- gard their prayer; they therefore still grew weaker and Aveaker, and were as a rolling thing before the whirlwind. They cried to their king for help, and laid Diabolonians in their bosoms; what therefore should a king do to them? Yea, there seemed now to be a mixture in Mansoul, the Diabolonians and Man- soulians would Avalk the streets togetiier. Yea, they began to seek their peace, for they thought, that since the sickness had been so mortal in Mansoul, it was in vain to go to handy-gripes with them. Besides, the weakness of Mansoul was the strength of their enemies; and the sins of Mansoul the advantage of the Diabolonians. The foes of Mansoul also now began to promise themselves the town for a possession; there was no great differ- ence now betwixt the Mansoulians and Diabolonians; both seem- ed to be masters of Mansoul. Yea, the Diabolonians increased and grew, but the town of Mansoul diminislied greatly. There were more than eleven thousand men, women, and children, that died by the sickness of Mansoul.* * When there is grace in the soul, there can scarce he a total insensibditj'. They had petitioned again and again; but they regarded iniquity in the heart, therefore their prayers were not heard. O what a change had taken place. Time was, when Immanuel first came to dwell in Mansoul, that all was joy, and peace, and love; but sin was indulged, and Jesus departed. 18S THE HOLY WAR. CHAPTER XIV. The Plot discovered by Mr Prywell. Prejiarations made for defence. More Diabolonians executed. The army of Doubters described; they ap proach the town, and make an assault upon Ear-gate, but are repelled. The Drummer beats a jiarley, but is disregarded. Dia bolus atlemi)ts to deceive by his flatteries, but in vain. Jolly and Griggish, two young Diabolonians, exe- cuted. Gripe and Rake-all hanged. Any-ihing and Loose-foot imprisoned. BUT HOW, as Shaddai would have it, there Avas one whose name was Mr Prywell, a great lover of the people of Mansoul. And he, as his manner was, wentlistening up and down in Man- soul, to see and hear if at any time he might, whether there Avas ™, J. any design against it, or no. For he was always a Tif". -p , 11 jealous man, and feared some mischief some time ^ ■ would befal it, either from the Diabolonians within or from some power without. Now upon a time it so happened, as Mr Prywell went listening here and there, that he lighted upon a place called Vile-hill in Mansoul, where Diabolonians used to meet; so hearing a muttering, (you must know that it was in the _,, -r^- I 7 • nioht,) he softly drew near to hear; nor had he The Diaboioni- ^° , , j .1 i j /r \i ^ j , , . ,. stood Ions: under the house-end (tor there stood ans lot disco- , .° \ 1 . 1 1 j c 1 *i c J ,, a house there,) but he heard one confidently af- vered and by » ^i ^ -^ .. 11 ^u 1 \. , ^ nrm, that it was not, or would not be long, be- fore Diabolus should possess himself again of Mansoul, and that then the Diabolonians did intend to put all Mansoulians to the sword, and would kill and destroy the king's captains, and drive all his soldiers out of the town.* He said, moreover, That he knew there were above twenty thousand fighting men prepared by Diabolus for the accomplish- ing of his design, and that it would not be many months before they all should see it. When Mr Prywell had heard this story Religion was now at so lo%v an ebb, that'they mixed freely with the world, and "there was no great difference between the Mansoulians and the Diabo- lonians— between professors and profane." This is an awful case; a case, alas! too common. Reader, pause and examine thyself. Is this thy state? If it be not, bless the Lord who hath kept thee from falling. If it be, O cry to him for pardon and grace, for dreadful danger is at hand. Sin is, indeed, the sickness of the soul. Many thousands are said to have died by it. This is not intended as if any of the Lord's truly gracious and elect people had finally perished; (which would be contrary to the truth;) but ttiat very great and clreadful loss had been sustained by this awful back- sliding from him, the deadful consequences of which appear in the next chapter. * Holy jealousy and careful examination will detect the plans and devices of Satan. We cannot watch and pry too narrowly when we consider the de- ceiifulness of sin and of the heart. BY JOHN BUNYAN. 189 YT 1 . 1- he quickly believed it was true? wherefore he Understanaing ^^ent forthwith to my Lord-mayor's house, and lu ^i ^ ..u r , „ made Mr Prywell's news the argument thereof. *' For, said he, a horrible plot is contrived against Mansoul, even to massacre us all in a day; nor is this story to be slighted, for Mr Pry well is the author thereof. Mr Prywell was always a lover of Mansoul, a sober and judicious man, a man that is no tattler, nor raiser of false reports, but one that loves to look into the very bottom of matters, and talks nothing of news but by very solid argument. I will call him, and you shall hear him your own selves; so he called him, and he came and told his tale so punctually, and affirmed its truth with such ample grounds, that Mansoul fell presently under a conviction of the truth of what he said. The preacher also backed him, saying. Sirs, it is not irrational for us to believe it, for we have provoked Shaddai to anger, and have sinned Immanuel out of the town; we have had too much correspondence with Diabolonians, and have forgotten our ten- der mercies; no marvel, then, if the enemy both Avithin and without should design and plot our ruin; and what time like this to do it? The sickness is now in the town, and we have been made weak thereby. Many a good-meaning man is dead, and the Diabolonians of late grown stronger and stronger. Besides, quoth the subordinate preacher, what I have received from this good truth-teller is one inkling further, that he un- T/ f h tJ ^^'"stood by those that he overheard, that several j^ ^ ' letters have lately passed between the furies of the pit and the Diabolonians, in order to our des- truction. When Mansoul heard all this, and not being able to gainsay it, they lift up their voice and wept. Mr Prywell also, in the presence of the townsmen, confirmed all that their sub- ordinate preacher had said. Wherefore they now set afresh to bewail their folly, and to a doubling of petitions to Shaddai, and his son. They also brake the business to the captains, high * The Holy Spirit was grieved, and suspended his usual influences. Gospel ministers are watchmen, and must sound the alarm in the time danger. 190 THE HOLY WAR. /xii 4. n 4.-L commanders, and men of war in the town of They tell these ,, i • . .• c .\ .. .u J . ^ J Mansoul, inlrealing of them to use the means ^ . to be strong, and to take good courage, and that " ' they -would look after their harness, and make themselves ready to give Diabolus battle by night or by day. should he come, as they are informed he will, to beleaguer the town of Mansoul. When the captains heard this, they being always true lovers of the town of Mansoul, what do they, but like so many Samsons, they shake themselves, and come together to consult and con- trive how to defeat those bold and hellish contrivances that were upon the wheel, by the means of Diabolus and his friends, against the now sickly, weakly, and much impoverished town of Mansoul; and they agreed upon these following particulars. 1. That the gates of Mansoul should be kept shut, and made rp, . fast with bars and locks, and that all persons that ^ went out or came in should be very strictly ex- amined by the captains of the guards, 1 Cor. xvi. 13, to the end, said they, that those that are managers ot the plot amongst us may, either coming or going, be taken; and that we may also find out who are the great contrivers (amongst us) of our ruin, Lam. iii. 40. 2. The next thing was, that a strict search should be made for all kind of Diabolonians, throughout the whole town of Man- soul; and that every man's house from top to bottom, should be looked into, and that too house by house, that if possible a farther discovery might be made of all such among them as had a hand in these designs, Heb. xii. 15, 16. 3. It was further concluded upon, that wheresoever or with whomsoever any of the Diabolonians were found, that even those of the town of Mansoul, tliat had given them house and harbour, should, to their shame and tlie warning of others, do penance in the open place, Jer. ii. 34. chap. v. 26. Ezek. xvi. 52. 4. It was moreover resolved by the famous town of Mansoul, » ,,. f, that a public fast, and a day of humiliation, ^j . J^ should be kept throughout the whole corporation, , ^ -^ . to the iustifj'ing of their prince, the abasing of solemn humi- ^, •', ■', ? i • r ^i • .. ° ,. . themselves betore him for their transgressions against him, and against Shaddai his father, Joel i. 14. chap. ii. 15, 16. It was further i-esolved, that all such in Mansoul as did not on that day endeavour to keep that fast, and to humble themselves for their faults, but should mind their worldly employments, or be found wandering up or down the streets, sliould be taken for Diabolonians, and suffer as Diabo- lonians for such wicked dr^ngs. BY JOHN RUNYAN. I9i 5. It was further concluded then, that with what speed, and •with what warmth of mind they could, they would renew their humiliation for sin, and their petitions to Shaddai for help; they also resolved to send tidings, to the court of all that Mr Prywell had told them, Jcr. xxxviii. 4. 6. It was also determined, that thanks should be given by the town of Mansoul to Mr Prywell, for his diligent seeking of the welfare of their town; and further, that forasmuch as he was so naturally inclined to seek their good, and also to undermine their foes, they gave him a commission of Scout-master-general, for the good of the town of Mansoul.* When the corporation, with their captains, had thus conclud- ed, they did as tliey had said, they shut their gates, they made for Diabolonians strict search, they made those with whom any were found, to do penance in the open place. They kept their fast, and renewed their petition to their prince, and Mr Pry- well managed his charge, and the trust that Mansoul had put into his hands, with great conscience and good fidelity; for he gave himself wholly up to his employ, and that not only withia the town, but he went out to pry, to see, and to hear. Not many days after, he provided for his journey, and went Tif P - 7/ towards Hellgate-hill, into the country where ^'' ^. Doubters were, where he heard of all that had •^ ^ been talked ot in Mansoul, and he perceived also that Diabolus was almost ready for his march. Sec. So he came back with speed, and calling the captains and elders of Mansoul together, he told them where he had been, Avhat he had heard, and what he had seen. Particularly he told them, that Diabolus was almost ready for his march, and that he had rr . made old Mr Incredulity, that once brake prison in . , Mansoul, the general of his army; that his army con- ^' sisted of all Doubters, and that their number was above twenty thousand. He told, moreover, that Diabolus intended to bring with him the chief princes of the In- fernal Pit, and that he would make them chief captains over his Doubters. He told them, moreover, that it was certainly true, that several of the black den would with Diabolus ride refor- mades, to reduce the town of Mansoul to the obedience of Dia- bolus their prince. He said, moreover, that he understood by the Doubters, among whom he had been, that the reason why old Incredulity was made general of the whole army, was, because none truer than he to * All these we»-e wise regulations. They show that we should be earnest in supplication, very diligent in self-examination, deeply humbled for sin, and zealous In delecting our corruptions. 192 THE HOLY WAR. the tyrant; and because he had an implacable spite against ihe town of Mansoul. Besides, said he, he remembers the affront that Mansoul lias given him, and he is resolved to be revenged of them.* But tlie black princes shall be made high commanders; only Incredulity shall be over them all, because he can more easily and dexterously beleaguer the town of Mansoul, than any of the princes besides, Heb. xii. 1. Now when the captains of Mansoul, with the elders of the town, had beard the tidings that Mr Prj,well brouglit, they thought it expedient, without further delay, to put into execu- mi J r T tion the laws against the Diabolonians, which The laws of Im- ^, . • , ; , , • . ' , •'. . their prince had made, and given them in com- • 7 T^- 7 J • manument to manage asjainst tliem. VV nere- t/ie Diabolonians ^ r *i -^i ^•^^ ^ j • *• i i. P^ . ^ tore, lorthwitn a dilisrent and impartial search lit into eXeCU- i • n i • nr ^ c 11 1 ■was made in all bouses in Mansoul, lor all and all manner of Diabolonians. Now in the house of Mr Mind, and in the house of the great Lord Will-be-will, were two Diabolonians found. In Mr Mind's house was one Lord Covetousness found; but he had changed his name to Prudent-thrifty. In my Lord Will-be-will's house, one Lasci- viousness was found; but he had changed his name to Harmless- mirth. These two the captains and elders of the town of Man- soul took and committed to custody, under the hand of Mr Trueman, the gaoler; and this man handled them so severely, and loaded them so well with irons, that they both tell into a very deep consumption, and died in the prison; their masters also, according to the agreement of the captains and elders, were brought to do penance in the open place, to their shame, and a ■warning to the rest of the town of Mansoul. t Now this was the manner of penance in those days. The persons offending, being made sensible of the evil of their doings, were enjoined open confession of their faults, and a strict amendment of their lives.:]: After this the captains and elders of Mansoul sought yet to find out more Diabolonians, wherever they lurked, whether in • The design of Satan was to overwhelm the soul with doubts and fears, in consequence of sin indulged; incredulity, therefore, or unbelief, is, with great propriety, a])j)ointed general of the army, for the doubts and feais of serious persons usually arise from unbelief. t In the time of danger we are more engaged in the mortification of our sinful lusts; and it is well when the deceiifulness of sin is detected, ts false names and pretences discovered, and when covetousness and lasciv; lusness consume away and die. J: This godly discipline is almost unknown in our day; yet is it consonant with the word of God, and if practised, would promote the holiness of the church, and its credit in the eyes of the world. BY JOHN BUNYAN. 193 (lens caves, boles, vaults, or where else they could, in or about the wall or town of Mansoul. But though they could plainly see their lootil)'^ and so follow them by their track and smell to their holes even\o the mouths of their caves and dens, yet take and do iustic'e upon them they could not, their ways were so crooked, their holes so strong, and they so quick to take sanctuary there. But Mansoul ruled now with so stiff a hand over the D.abo- lonians that were left, that they were glad to The Dmholo- g,^..i„|, i^to corners: time was, when they durst nians hide ^^.^jj, openly and in the day but now they were themselves in f^^.j^j^^i ^^ embrace privacy and the night: time was, their dens. y,,\^Qn a Mansoulian was their companion, but now thev '-ounted them deadly enemies. This change did Mr Prvwell's intelligence make in the town of Mansoul. By this time Uiabolus had finished his army which he in- tended to bring with him for the ruin of Mansoul; and had set over them captains, and other field officers, such as liked his furious stomach best: himself was lord paramount. Incredulity was general of his army. Their highest captains sha.l be nam- ed afterwards; but now for their officers, colours, and scutcheons. 1 Their first captain was Captain Rage, he was captain over theElection-Doubters, his were the red colours; his standard- bearer was Mr Destructive, and the great red dragon he had for his scutcheon, Rev. xU. 3, 4, 13, 15, 17. 2. The second captain was Captain Fury, he was captain over the Vocation-Doubters, his standard-bearer was Mr Darkness, his colours were those that were pale, and he had for his scut- cheon the fiery flying serpent, Numb. xx. 6. ^ 3 The third captain was Captain Damnation, he ^as captain over the Grace-Doubters, his were the red colours; Mr No-life bare them, and he had for his scutcheon the black den, Matt. iii. 22, 23. Rev. ix. 1 . . , , , 4 The fourth captain was Captain Insatiable, he was^captain over the Faith-Doubters,+ his were the red colours; Mr De- vourer bare them, and he had for his scutcheon the yawmng- iaws, Prov. xxvii. 20. . 5. The fifth captain was Captain Brimstone, he was captain * When eracerei^s in the heart, sin cannot show "self as it once did: but R 194 THE HOLY WAR. over the Perseverance-Doubters, his also were the red colours; Mr Burning bare them, and his scutcheon was the blue and stinking flame, Ps. xi. 6. Rev. xiv. 11. 6. The sixth captain was Captain Torment, he was captain over the Resurrection-Doubters, his colours were tbose that were pale, Mr Gnaw was his standard-bearer, and he had the black worm for his scutcheon, Mark. ix. 44, 46, 48. 7. The seventh captain was Captain No-ease, he was cap- tain over the Salvation-Doubters, his were the red colours, Mr Restless bare tbcm, and his scutcheon was the ghastly picture oi death. Rev. iv. 11. chap. vi. 8. 8. The eighth captain Avas Captain Sepulchre, he Avas captain over the Glory-Doubters, his also were the pale colours, Mr Corruption was his standard-bearer, and he had for his scut- cheon a sculi, and dead men's bones, Jer. v. 16. ch. ii. 25. 9. The ninth captain was Captain Past-hope, he was captaia of those tliat are called the Felicity -Doubters, his standard-bearer Avas 'Mv Despair; his also were the red colours, and his scutch- eon Avas the hot iron and the hard heart, Tim ii. 4. Rom. ii. 5 These Avere his captains, and these Avere their forces, these were the standards, these Avere their colours, and these were their scutcheons. Noav oA-er these did the great Diabolus make superior captains, and they Avere in number seven: as namely, rp, J . r the Lord Beelzebub, the Lord Lucifer, the /)/ ■ . f n Lord Legion, the Lord Apollyon, the Lord ' / J ^ J ~ Python, the Lord Cerberus, and the Lord Be- abolus^s anny. ,• , ^, , . .i . • i •^ lial; these seven he set over the captains, and Incredulity Avas lord general, and Diabolus Avas king. The reformades also, such as Avere like themselves, Avere made some of them captains of hundreds, and some of them cap- tains of more. And thus was the army of Incredulity completed. So they set out at Hellgate-hill (for there they had tlieir ren- dezvous,) from Avhence they came Avitb a straight course upon their march tOAvards the town of Mansoul. Now, as Avas hinted before, the town had, as Shaddai Avould have it, received from the mouth of Mr Prywell the alarm of their coming before. Wherefore they set a strong Avatch at the gates, and had also doubled their guards; they also mounted their slings in good places, Avheie they might conveniently cast out their great stones to the annoyance of the enemy. Nor could those Diabolonians that Avere in the toAvn do that hurt as Avas designed they should; for Mansoul Avas noAv awake. But alas, poor people, they Avere sorely affrighted at the first appearance of their foes, and at their sitting down before the town, especially when they heard the roaring of their drum^ 1 BY JOHN BUNYAN. 195 Pet. V. 8. This, to speak truth, was amazingly hideous to hear, it frightened all men seven miles round.* The streaming of their colours, was also terrible and dejecting to behold. When Diabolus was come up against the town, first he made He makes an l"^ approach to Ear-gate, and gave it a furious , . assault, supposinir, as it seems, tliat his Iriends assault vf)ou • ^^ i i i u i * i .i i • i -r, / 7 in jNIansoul had been ready to do the work with- Ear~srate and . , ^ , r 1i *. i, r i ^i ■ ' y // / ^"' ^^^'^ "^^'^^ taken ot that betore, by tlie vi- ^ ' gilance of the captains. Wherefore missing of the help that he expected from them, and finding his army warm- ly attacked with the stones from the slingers (for that I Avill say for the captains, that considering the weakness that yet was upon them by reason of the long sickness that had annoyed the rr ^ . 1 town of Mansoul, they behaved themselves He retreats and ,, ., \ , V i ^ i . ^ , , . eallantlv,) he was forced to make some retreat tntrenclies lum- 5 tvt i j-.^ i,i- if iv.- ,,. trom Mansoul, and intrench himsclt and his •^* men in the field, without the reach of the slings of the town, James iv. 7. Now having intrenched himself, he cast up four mo'ints against the town; the first he called Mount Diabolus, putting his own name thereon, the more to aftright the town of Mansoul; the other three he called thus. Mount Alecto, Mount Megara, and Mount Tisiphone, for these are the names of the dreadful furies of hell. Thus he began to play his game with Mansoul, and to serve it as the lion his prey, even to make it fall before his ter- ror. But, as I said, the captains and soldiers, resisted so stoutly, and did so much execution, that they made him, though against stomach, to retreat; wherefore IMansoul began to take courage. Now upon Mount Diabolus, which was raised on the north ■^. , , , ^ side of the town, there did the tyrant set up Jjiabolus^s Stan- , . * j i J r r i ..i • '.. ^ x. ... his standard, and a teartul thing it was to be- "' hold, for he had wrought in it by devilish art after the manner of his scutcheon, a flaming fire, fearful to be- hold, and the picture of Mansoul burning in it. When Diabolus had thus done, he commanded that his drum- mer should every night approach the walls of the town of Miin- soul, and beat a parley; the command was to do it at night, as in the day-time tliey annoyed him with their slings; for the tyrant said, that he had a mind to parley with the now trembling town of Mansoul, and he commanded that the drum should beat every night, that through weariness they might at last, if possi- ble, (at the first they were unwilling, yet) be forced to do it. So the drummer did as he was commanded; he arose, and * 1 Pet. v. 8. « Be sober, be vipilaiU: because your adversary the devil, as a roaring lion, waiketh about, seeking whom he may devour." 196 THE HOLY WAR. beat his drum. But when his drum did go, if one looked to- wards the town of Mansoul, behold darkness and sorrow, and the light was darkened in the heaven thereof, Isa. v. 30. No noise was ever heard upon earth more terrible, except the voice of Sbadtlai when he sjjeaketh. But liow did Mansoul' tremble! it now looked for nothing but forthwith to be swallowed up.* When this drummer had beaten a parley, he made this speech -„, , to Mansoul: " My master has bid me tell vou, Ihe drummer ., ^ .^ .,, • .... i i •.. "i n , that II vou will willincjly submit, you shall makes a speech , ,,•' ^ c ^\ .1 i. .. r 1 ^^ -u I 1 /• 7-»- have the good ot the earth: but it vou shall be oil order of Dia- ^ , , \ . \ \ ^\ ^ ' \. c- ■>■> j^ , ^ stubborn, he is resolved to take you by lorce. But by that the fugitive had done beating liis drum, the people of Mansoul had betaken themselves to the captains that were in the castle, so that there was none to regard nor to give this drummer an answer: so he proceeded no further that night, but returned again to his master to the camp. When Diabolus saw that, by drumming, he could not work out Mansoul to his will, the next night he sendeth this drum- mer without his drum, still to let the townsmen know that he had a mind to parley with them. But when all came to all, his parley was turned into a summons to the town, to deliver up them- selves: but they gave him neither heed nor hearing, for they re- membered what at first it cost them to hear him a few words. f The next night he sends again, and then who should be his messenger to Mansoul but the terrible Captain Sepulchre; so Captain Sepulchre came up to the walls of Mansoul, and made this oration to the town: *' O ye inhabitants of the rebellious town of Mansoul ! I sum- mon you in the name of the prince Diabolus, that without any more ado you set open the gates of your town, and admit your lord to come in. But if you shall still rebel, when we have taken the town by force, we will swallosv you up as the grave; wherefore if you will hearken to my summons, say so; and if not, then let them know. "The reason of this my summons;" quoth he, " is, for that my lord is your undoubted prince and lord, as you yourselves have formerly owned. Nor shall that assault that was given to my lord, when Immanuel dealt so dishsnourably by him, prevail with him to lose his right, and to forbear to attempt to recover his own. Consider then, O Mansoul, with thyself, wilt thou show thyself peaceably, or not? If thou wilt quietly yield upthy- * The miseries of the damned may sometimes fjreatly teiuify a true Chris- tian, who, being delivered by Jesus from tlie wrath to come, has no reason to fear tliein. t We most not parley with the tempter, or hold any correspondence with him. A few words with him ruined us all in our first parents. RY JOHN BUNYAN. 197 self, then our old friendship shall he renewedihutif thou wilt yet refuse and rebel, then expect nothing but fire and sword."* When the languishing town of Mansoul lieard this summoner, and his summons, th.ey were yet more put to their dumps, but made tlie captain no answer at all; so away he went as he came. After some consultation among themselves, as also with some ™ ,. ,. oftheir captains, they applied themselves afresh 1 lie jminsouli- ^^ ^^^^ j^^,^^ secretary for counsel and advice am apply pv ^,^,^^^_^ ^^ ^^^ ^j^.^ ^^^^ secretary was tlieir chief advice to their . , .. i u r \ i „„,„ \^^ . J preacher (as mentioned betoi-e) only now he lord secretarij. ^^^^ ^ ^^ ^^g^. ^^^ ^^ j^j^ ^j^^^. Pegged favour in these two or three things. 1. That he would look comfortably upon them, and not keep himself so much retired from them as formerly. Also, that he would be prevailed with to give them a hearing while they should make known their miserable condition to him. But to this he told them as before. That as yet he was but ill at ease, and therefore could not do as he had formerly done. 2. The second thing they desired, was, that he would be pleased to give tliem his advice about their now so important affairs, for that Diabolus Avas come and set before the town with no less than twenty thousand Doubters. They said, moreover, that both he and his captains were cruel men, and that they were afraid of them. But to this he said. You must look to the law of the prince, and there see what is laid upon you to do.f 3. Then they desired that his highness would help them to frame a petition to Shaddai, and unto Immanuel his son, and that he would set his own hand thereto, as a token that he was one with them in it: for said they, my Lord, many a one have we sent, but can get no answer of peace, but now surely one w ith thy hand unto it, may obtain good for Mansoul. But all the answer he gave to this, Avas, That they had oifend- ed Immanuel, and had also grieved himself, and that therefore they must as yet partake of their own devices. This answer of the lord secretary fell like a mill-stone upon them; yea, it crushed them so, that they could not tell what to do, yet they durst not comply with the demands of Diabolus, • The tear of death sometimes seizes the mind of a child of God: but Jesus came to deliver us from that cruel bondage. This Captain Sepulchre often pays a visit to the doubting soul. But Christians should remember, that Je- sus has disarmed death of his sting, and that death itself shall be rendered gain. t It was wisely done to seek the assistance of the Holy Spirit. He refers them to the written word, for there is sufficient direction in every case. While we earnestly desire the help of the good spirit we must not neglect the direc- tions of the word. R 2 198 THE HOLY WAR. rpj I t 't "°^ ^'^"^ ^^^ demands of his captain, Lam. i. 3. J. ^r 7 So then here vere the straits that the town of of JMaiisoiil. ,, 1 • 1 .u '' Mansoul was in when the enemy came upon her: her foes were ready to swallow her up, and her friends forhore to help her. Then stood up my lord-mayor, whose name was my Lord Understanding, and he began to pick and pick, until he had pick- ed comfort out of that seemingly bitter saying of the lord secre- tary; for thus he descanted upon it: First, said he, This un- avoidably follows upon the saying of my lord, That Ave must yet suffer for our sins. 2. But, quoth he, the word "yet" sounds as if at last we should be saved from our enemies, and that, after a few more soi-rows, Immanuel will come and be our help. Now the lord-mayor was the more critical in his dealing Avith the secretary's words, because ray lord was more than a prophet, and because none of his words were such, but that at all times they Avere most exactly significant, and the toAvnsmen v.ere alloAved to pry into them, and to expound them to their best ad- vantage.* So they took their leaves of my lord, and returned to the captains, to Avhom they told Avhat my lord secretary had said, who, Avhen they had heard it, Avex'e all of the same opinion as Avas my lord-mayor himself; the captains therefore began to take courage, and prepared to make some brave attempt upon the camp of the enemy, and to destroy all that Avere Diabolonians, with the roving Doubters that the tyrant had brought with him to ruin the poor tOAvn of Mansoul. So all betook themselves forthAvith to their places, the captains rpj . j.to theirs, the lord-mayor to his, the subordinate ,-- , .-^preacher to his, and my Lord Will-be-Avill to his. Jyiansoul in L., ^ . , i . , ^ i r .i • , , 1 ne captams longed to be at some Avork tor their prince, for they delighted in Avarlike achieve- ments. The next day, therefore, they came together and con- sulted; and after consultation had, they resolved to give an answer to the captain of Diabolus Avith slings; and so they did at the ris- ing of the sun on the raorroAV; for Diabolus had adventured to come nearer again, but the sling-stones wei'e to him and his like hornets. For as there is nothing to the toAvn of Mansoul so terrible as the I'oaring of Diabolus's drum, so there is nothing to Diabolus so terrible as the well playing of Immanuel 's slings. Wherefore Diabolus was forced to make another retreat, yet further off from the famous town of Mansoul. Then did the Icrd-mayor of Mansoul cause the bells to be rung, and that • To search the scri pture carefully is our duty, and it is a great privilege to nosst'ss an enlightened uiulersianding for that purpose. BY JOHN BUNYAN. 199 thanks shonld be sent to the lord high secretary by the mouth of the subordinate preacher; for that by his Avords the captains and elders of Mansoul had been strengthened against Diabolus.* When Diabolus saw thathis captainsand soldiers, high lords, and renowned, were frightened and beaten down by the stones that came from the golden slings of the prince of the town of Mansoul, he bethought himself, and said, I will try to catch them by fawning, I will try to flatter them into my net. Wherefore, after a while he came down again to the wall, not now -with his drum, nor with Captain Sepulchre, but Diabolus chatiQ-es having all so besugarded his lips; he seemed to be a very sweet-mouthed, peaceable prince, designing noth- his ivay. j^^ ^^^ honour sake, nor to be revenged on Mansoul for injuries by them done to him; but the welfare, and good, and advantage of the town and people therein, was now, as he said, his only design. Wherefore, after he had called for audience, and desired that the townsfolk would give it to him, he pro- ceeded in his oration and said,t "Oh! the desire of my heart, the famous town of Mansoul, how many nights have 1 watched, and how many weary steps have I taken, if perhaps I might do thee good! 1 Pet. v. 8. Rev. xii. 10. Far be it, far be it from me to desire to make war upon you; if ye will but willingly and quickly deliver up yourselves unto me. You know that you were mine of old, Matt. iv. 8. Luke iv. 6, 7. Remember also, that so long as you enjoyed me for your lord, and that I enjoyed you for my subjects, you wanted for nothing of all the delights of the earth, that I, your lord and prince could get for you; or that I could invent to make you bonny and blithe withal. Consider, you never had so many hard, dark, troublesome and heart-afflicting hours, while you were mine, as you have had since you revolted from me, nor shall you ever have peace again until you and I become one as before. Be but prevailed with to embrace me again, and I will grant, yea, enlarge your old Biabolm exerts ^^^^^.^^^ ^^j^j^ abundance of privileges, so that himself to brmg ^^^^ w^euse and liberty shall be to take, hold, the townsjolk . ^^^^ ^^^^^ ^^^^ ^^^.^^ ^^^ tj^^t is pleasant over to him. j.^,^^^ ^^^^ ^^ ^^^^^^ ^^^ sl^^H ^^^y of those in- civilities, wherewith you have offended me, be ever charged * Resist the devii and he will flee from you. A little encouragement from the Holy Spirit exeites fresh courage in the soul to oppose Satan; and, no doubt, the holy resistance of the Christian is as formidable to him as his assaults are to the tempted. , . t Satan has variotis modes of attack. li he succeed not as the roaring lion, he will assume the crafty serpent; if he prevail not by fear he will resort to flattery; in the latter way he obtained his purpose with our first mother. 200 THE HOLY WAR. upon you by me, so long as tlie sun and moon endure. Nor shall any of those dear friends of mine, that now, for the fear of you, lie lurking in dens and holes and caves in Mansoul, be hurtful to you any more; yea, they shall be your servants, and shall minister unto you of tlieir substance, and of wliatever shall come to hand. I need speak no more, you know them, and have some time since been much delighted in their company; why then should we abide at such odds? Let us renew our old ac- quaintance and friendship again. " Bear with your friend, I take the liberty at this time to speak thus freely unto you. The love that I have to you presses me to do it, as also does the zeal of my heart for my friends with you; put me not therefoi-e to further trouble, nor yourselves to further frights. Have you I will, in away of peace or war, nor do you flatter yourselves with the power and force of your cap- tains, or that your Immanuel will shortly come in to your help; for such strength will do you no pleasure. *' I am come against you with a stout and valiant army, and all the chief princes of the den are even at the head. Besides, my captains are swifter than eagles, stronger than lions, and more greedy of prey tlian are the evening wolves. What is Og or Bashan! what is Goliath of Gath? and what arc a hundred more of them to one of the least of my captains! how then shall Mansoul think to escape my hand and force?"* Diabolus having thus ended his flattering, fawning, deceitful^ and lying speech to the famous town of Mansoul; tlie Lord- mayor replied unto him as follows: "O Diabolus, prince of darkness, and master of all deceit; „„ , , thy Iving flatteries we have had, and made sufFi- The lord-may- ••'/*,.. c i u .1 1 1 r , ^ cient probation 01, and have tasted too deeply of that destructive cup already; should we therefore again hearken unto thee, and so break the commandment of our great Shaddai, to join affinity with thee, would notour prince reject us, and cast us off" for ever, and, being cast off" by him, can tlie place that he has prepared for thee be a place of rest for us! Besides, O thou that art empty and void of all truth, we are rather ready to die by thy hand than to fall in with thy flattering and lying deceits."! When the tyrant saw that there was little to be got in parley- ing with my lord mayor, he feJ into a hellish rage, and resolved • Tliis infernal liar promises great things — wonderful liberty — all sensual gratifications, with perfect freedom from all religious fears and restraints; but he does not say, that after all this—" ye shall lie down in sorrow." t An excellent answer! Past experience has proved that sin is bitterness in the end. Let us treat Satan as a liar, and maintain our allegiance to our prince. BY JOHN BUNYAN. 201 that again with his army of Doubters he would anotlicr time assault the town of Mansoul. So he called for his drummer, ivho beat up for his men (and while he did beat, Mansoul shook) to be in readiness to give battle to the corporation; then Diabolus drew near M'ilh his ar- _. , - , , my and thus disposed of his men. Captain Diabolus draws vp ^^^^^^ ^^^ ^.^ ^^j^^ Torment, these he drew his army against ^^^ ^^^, ^,^^^^j ^^^j^^^^ Feel-gate, and com- owji. nianded them to set down there for the war.* And he also appointed, that if need were, Captain No-ease should come into their relief. At Nose-gale he placed Captain Brim- stone and Captain Sepulchre, and bid them look well to their ward on that side of the tOM'n of Mansoul, But at Eye-gate he placed that grim-faced one, the Captain Past-hope, and there also now did he set up his terrible standard. Now Captain Insatiable was to look to the carriages of Diabo- lus, and was also appointed to take into custody that, or those persons knd things that should at any time as prey be taken from the enemy. The inhabitants of ]Mansoul kept mouth-gate for a sally-port, wherefore that they kept strong, for that was it by and out of which the townsfolk sent their petitions to Im- manuel their prince; that also was the gate, from the top of which the captains played their slings at the enemies, for that gate stood somewhat ascending, so that the placing of them here, and the letting of them fly from that place, did much execution against the tyi'ant's army; wherefore for these causes, with others, Diabolus sought, if possible, to stop up Mouth-gaie with dirt.f Now as Diabolus was busy and industrious in preparing to make his assault upon the town of Mansoul without, so the cap- tains and soldiers in the corporation were as busy in preparing within; they mounted their slings, set up their banners, sound- ed their trumpets, and put themselves in such order as Avas judged most for the annoyance of the enemy, and for the advan- tage of Mansoul; and gave their soldiers orders to be ready at the sound of the trumpet for war. The Lord Will-be-will also, he took the charge of watching against the Ihe J.ord-nil- ^.g^^gjg ,vithin, and to do what he could to take be-tviH plays the ^j^^^ ^^^^.^^ without, or to stifle them within '""^** their caves, dens, and holes in the town-wall of Mansoul, And, to speak the truth of him, ever since he did * Satan's Intention being to fill the soul with doubts, and, if possible, with despair, places his forces at Feel-gate; that is, he would lead the soul to doubt by trusting to his religious frames and feelings, instead of looknigonly to Jesus. t The christian's chief weapon is prayer; no wonder, then, that the enemy wishes to obstruct it. 202 THE HOLY WAR. penance for his fault, he has showed as much honesty and bra- very of spirit as may be iu Mansoul, for he took one Jolly, and his brother Griggish, the two sons of his servant Harmless- 7- „ 7 /-, • mirth; (for to that dav, though the fatlier was Jolli/ a)id Grisr- -A j . i i i i i n- ■ J , ^, committed to ward, the sons had a dwellmg in ^ '' ^ J the house of my lord) I sav, he took them, and executed. • , . • i i , , a j with his own hands puttlieni to the cross. And this was the reason why he hanged them up; after their father ■was put into the hands of Mr Trueman the gaoler, his sons be- gan to play their pranks, and to be tricking and toying with the daugliters of their lord; nay, it was jealoused that they were too familiar with them, which was brought to his lordship's ear. Now his lordship being unwilling unadvisedly to put any man to death, did not suddenly fall upon them; but set watch and spies to see if the thing was true; of the which he was soon informed, for his two servants, whose names were Find-out and Tell-all, catched them together in an uncivil manner more than once or twice, and went and told their lord. So when my Lord Will- be-will had sufficient ground to believe the thing was true, he takes the two young Diabolonians, for such they were, (for tlieir father was a Diabolonian born) and has them to Eye-gate, where he raised a very high cross just in the face of Diabolus, and of his army, and there he hanged the young villains, in defiance of Captain Past-hope, and the horrible standard of the tyrant. Now this christian act of the brave Lord Will-be-will greatly Mortification of ^^^^^^^^ Captain Past-hope, discouraged the . . "^ . y army of Diabolus, put fear into the Diabolonian sin IS a si^n of •' , • ^r i i i. ^ ^i i h h f I'f runnagades in Alansoul, and put strength and ^ J "^ ' courage into the captains that belonged to Im- manuel the prince; for they without gathered, and that by this very act of my lord, that Mansoul was resolved to fight, and that the Diabolonians within the town could not do such things as Diabolus had hopes they would. Nor was this the only proof of the brave Lord Will-be-will's honesty to the town, nor of his loyalty to his prince, as will afterwards appear.* Now when tlie children of Prudent-thrLf"ty, who dwelt with Mr Mind, (for Thrift left children with IStr Mind, when he was also committed to prison, and their names were Gripe and Rake- all, these he begat of Mr Mind's bastard daughter, whose name • The world pleads hainl for gaity and freedomof behaviour between the sex- es; dancing aiicl other amusements are calculated to promote them. But ex- perience, painful experience, and careful obArvation, prove their danger. Avoid the appearance of evil, and every approach towards it. The gracious will determines on the destruction of carnal jKllity and frolic. In this way alone young persons will find their safety; .lud this act of mortification will please Christ, and dismay the enemy. BY JOHN BUNYAN. 203 was Mrs Hold-fast-bad,) I say, when nis chil- Mr Mind plays ^^^^ perceived how the Lord VViU-be- will had the man. served them that dwelt with him, what do they hut (lest they should drink of the same cup) endeavour to make their escape. But Mr Mind being wary of it, took them, and put them in hold in his house till the morning, (for this was done over-night,) and remembering that by the law of Mansoul all Dia- bolonians were to die (and to be sure they were at least by father's side such, and some say by mother's side too;) what does he, but takes them, and puts them in chains, and carries them to the self same place where my lord hanged his two before, there he hanged them. The townsmen also took great encouragement at this act of Mr Mind, and did what they could to have taken some more of these Diabolonian troublers of Mansoul; but at that time the rest lay so close, that they could not be apprehen- ded; so they set against them a diligent watch and went every man to his place.* I told you a little before, that Diabolus and his army were somewhat abashed and discouraged at the sight of what my Lord Will-be-will did, when he hanged up those two young Diabolo- nians; but his discouragement quickly turned itself into furious mildness and rage against the town of Mansoul, and fight it he would. Also the townsmen and captains within had their hopes and expectations heightened, believing at last the day would be theirs, so they feared them the less. Their subordinate preacher too made a sermon about it, and took that theme for his text, " Gad, a troop shall overcome him, but he shall overcome at the last." Whence he showed, that though Mansoul should be sorely put to it at the first, yet the victory should most cer- tanily be Mansoul's at the last, Gen. xlix. 19.t So Diabolus commanded that his drummer should beat a charge against the town, and the captains also that were in tiie town sounded a charge against them, but they had no drum, they were trumpets of silver with which they sounded against them. Then they which were of the camp of Diabolus came down to the town to take it, and the captains The battle be^-ms .^ ^^^^ ^^^^j^^ ^^,j^i^ the slingers at Mouth- betrueejiMansoTil plaved upon them amain. And now and the arn.y of ^j^^^.^ ^^^^'^ nothing heard in the camp of Diabolus. Diabolus but horrible rage and blasphemy; but in the town good words, prayer, and singing of psalms. • Covetousness, under whatever name it assumes, must be mortifiecl, for it *^ t This waV arcruing wisely, and thus shouhl the chrislian encourage him self in the Lord his G:)d, whin assaulted by an army of Doubters. 204 THE HOLY WAR. The enemy replied with horrible ohjections, and the tcrriblenesa of their drum; but the town made answer with the slapping of their slings, and the melodious noise of their trumpets. And thus the figlit lasted for several days together, only now and then they had some small intermission, in which the townsmen refresh- ed themselves, and the captains made ready for another assault. Tiie captains of Immanuel were clad in silver armour, and the soldiers in that which was of proof; the soldiers of Diabolus were clad in iron, which was made to give place to Immanuel '& engine shot. In the town some were hurt, and some were greatly wounded. Now the worst of it was, a surgeon was scarce in Mansoul, for that Immanuel at this time was absent. Rev. xxii. 2. Ps. xxxviii. 5. Howbeit, with the leaves ot a tree the wounded were kept from dying, yet their Avounds greatly TTZT r -^n putrified, and some did grievously stink. Of the Who of Man- \ ' , a a i ■, t « , -^ ^ townsmen these were wounded, to wit, my Lord , , Reason, he was wounded in the head. Another that was wounded, was the brave Lord-may or v he was wounded in the eye. Another that was wounded, was Mr Mind; he received his wound about the stomach. The „ ^ , honest subordinate preacher also received a shot not fjjf far off the heart, but none of these were mortal. Many ^ ' ' ■ also of the inferior sort were not only wounded, but slain our-right. Now in the camp of Diabolus were wounded and rr? '• // slain a considerable number: for instance. Captain /■ n* I^age was wounded, and so was Captain Cruel. 11 Captain Damnation was made to retreat, and in- boLus -ivers ^^^.^^^^ himself further off of Mansoul ; the standard ivminded and ^^^^ of Diabolus was beaten down, and his standard- * ^'"* bearer. Captain Much-hurt, had his brains beat out with a sling-stone, to the no little grief and shame of his prince Diabolus. Many also of the Doubters were slain out-right, though enough of them were left alive to make Mansoul shake and totter. Now - . the victory that day being turned to Mansoul, put ^ ^)^fh^^t g^'^^t valour into the townsmen and captains, and turned that j.q^.j,,.^,j Diabolus's camp with a cloud, but withal V^ci^ it made them far more furious. So the next day sou , c. Mansoul rested, and commanded that the bells should be rung, the trumpets also joyfully sounded, and the captains shouted round the town.* My Lord Will-be-will also was not idle, but did notable service within against the domestics, oi* the Diabolonians, that were in * By this b:itllo wc may mulersianil the conflict that often takes place 1k?- twtcn fahh and utkbt litf. Tlic believer may be wounded, but shall nol be slaiiw BY JOHN BUNYAN. 205 the town, not only by keeping of them in awe; for he lighted on one at last whose name was Mr Any-thing, a fellow of whom itr T 1 rT;-7T mention was made before, for it was he, if you J\lu Lord Will- , .1 ^1 w^u .1 "11 T^- h -■lit h tl remember, that brought the three icUows to Dia- ,-, ., . bolus, Avhom the Diabolonians took out of Can- one Anii-lhinsC') ^ • t^ ■, • j .i . j , , ^ J ^ tain Uoanerges's companies, and that persuaded dllU Oils 1jOOS6- ^, ^I'^ii I 1 ,1 , ,, r ^ J them to list themselves under the tyrant, to *oot, and com- a \ .. • ^ ^v r ci i i • t i ■tS 47 ^1 4 fight against the army ot bhaddai: my Lord mitteth them to -.-j^.,, , -,1 i ^ / ^ vi t-w- x i , AVill-be-will also took a notable Diabolonian, whose name was Loose-foot; this Loose-foot was a scout to the vagabonds in Mansoul, and used to carry ti- dings out of Mansoul to the camp, and out of the camp to those of the enemies in Mansoul; both these my lord sent away safe to Mr Trueman the goaler, with a commandment to keep them in irons; for he intended tiien to have them out to be crucified, when it would be for the best to the corporation, and most for the discouragement of the camp of the enemies.* My Lord-mayor also, though he could not stir about so much as formerly; because of the wound that he had lately received, yet gave he out orders to all that were the natives of Mansoul, to look to their watch and stand upon their guard, and, as oc- casion shall offer, to prove themselves men. Mr Conscience the preacher also did his utmost to keep all his good documents alive nv.5n the hearts of the people of jSIansoul. CHAPTER XV. The inhabitants of Mansoul made a rash sortie on the enemy by nigfht, but are repulsed with loss. Eiahclus makes a desperate attack upon Feel-gute, which being weak, he forces, and his army of Doubters possess the town, com- mitting mych violence. The inhabitants agree to petition Immanuel, and ob- tain the assistance of the secretary. Captain Credence presents the petition, is favourably received, and made Lord lieutenant of a 11 the forces. WELL, a while after the captains and stout ones of the town of Mansoul agreed, and resolved upon a time to make a sally out upon the camp of Diabolus, and this must be done in the night, rrn ... and there was the folly of Mansoul (for the The captains • i ^ • i ^\ x. Jt ^\. V .. .i_ ,/. r ,j night IS always the best lor the enemy, but the ., ^ worst for Mansoul to ficht in\ but vet they upon the enemy. ,, , ., ^, . ^ -' •••', .1 ••'^ ^ "^ would do it, their courage was so high; their last victory also still stuck in their memories. The night appointed being come, the prince's brave captains * Any-thing means indifference about religion— a conformity, or opposition to it, as convenience requires. Loose-foot, may signify a careless Avalk and convex-sation. S 206 THE HOLY WAR. Thfiv fifrl t n ^^^^ ^'^^^ ^^° should lead the van in this new and . -^ 1% desperate expedition against Diabolas, and against irn I *7 *i ^»is Diabclonian arm}-; and the lot fell to Captain tViio lead the >^ , i r-. ^ • V. • r^ * • r. j Credence and Uaptam hxperience; Laptain Good- hope led the forlorn-liope (this Captain Experi- ence the prince created such -when himself resided in the town „ , ofMansoul;) so as I said, they made their sally out f 11 upon the array that lay in the siege against them; and J ' their hap was to fall in with the the main body of their enemies. Now Diabolus and his men, being expertly accustom- ed to night-work, took the alarm presently, and were as ready to give them battle, as if they had sent them word of their coming. Wherefore to it they went amain, and blows were hard on every side; the hell-drum also was beat most furiously, while the trumpets of the prince most sweetly sounded. And thus the battle was joined, and Captain Insatiable looked to the enemies' carriages, and waited when he should receive some prey. The prince's captain's fought it stoutly, beyond what indeed rpj r If could be expected they should; they wounded many, jy^o l\^Qy made the whole army of Diabolus to make a re- ^' treat. But I cannot tell how, but as the brave Captain Credence, Captain Good-hope, and Captain Experience, were upon the pursuit, cutting down and following hard after the enemy _ . „^ in the rear, Captain Credence stumbled and fell, by , -^ , ^ which fall he caught so ereat a hurt, that he could not arise, till Captain Experience helped him up, at which their men were put in disorder; the captain also was so full of pain, that he could not forbear but aloud to cry out; attliis the other two captains fainted, supposing that Captain Credence had received his mortal wound; their men also were more disordered, „, ^ /.,, and had no mind to fight. Now Diabolus being Tlie vest of the . f • f very observing, though at this time as yet he Avas " ^ ' put to the worst, perceiving that a halt was made among the pursuers, what does he, but taking it for granted that the captains were either wounded or dead, he therefore at first makes a stand, then faces about, and so comes up ■f^. J J . T upon the prince's army with as much of his JJiaOolus takes ^^^,^^ ^^ j^^^ ^^^j^j ^^^^^ j^j^ ^^^ ^^^ j^j^ j^^^ P '^^^' was to fall in just among the three cap- tains, Captain Credence, Captain Good-hope, and Captain Ex- perience, and did cut, Avound, and pierce them so dreadfully, that what through discouragement, what through disorder, and . , \vl«at through the woiiuds that now tliey had re- I he prince s ^.^,■^^^^]^ and also the loss of much blood, they scarce forces beaten. ^^.^^.^ ^,^j^ (though they had for their power *he BY JOHN BUNYAN. 207 three Lest hands in Mansoul) to get safe into the town again. Now wlien the body of the prince's army saw how these three Captains were put to the worst, they thought it their wisdom to make as safe and good a retreat as they could, and so returned by the sally port again, and so there was an end of the present action.* Diabolus was so flushed with this night's work, that he pro- j^- J J /} J ] raised himself in a few days an easy and •^ ' complete conquest over the town of Mansoul: wherefore on the day following he comes up to the sides thereof with great boldness, and demands entrance, and that forthwith „ , , they deliver themselves up to his government He dema7icls t.\ -r^- \. i • * *i * m- t, * , (the Diabolonians too that were withm began to be somewhat brisk, as we shall show afterwards,) but the valiant lord-mayor replied, that what he got he must get _, , by force; for as long as Immanuel their prince was in yor s j^Jj^e, (though he at present was not so with them as ansivei . ^^^ wished,) they could never consent to yield Mansoul up to anothei\ The Lord Will-be will then stood up, and said, *' Diabolus, 7? rrv; / ^^^^^ master of the den, and enemy to all that -■iT^ih is good, we poor inhabitants of the town of ivi s speec . Mansoul are too well acquainted v/ith thy rule and government, and with the end of those things that for certain will follow submitting to thee, to do it. Wherefore, though a while we were without knowledge, we suffered thee to take us (as the bird that saw not the snare fell into the hands of the fowler,) yet since we have been turned from darkness to light, we have also been turned from the power of Satan to God. And though through thy subtlety, and the subtlety of the Diabolonians wiiliin, we have sustained much loss, and also plunged ourselves into much perplexity, yet give up ourselves, lay down our arms, and yield to so horrid a tyrant as thou, we will not; die upon the the place we chuse rather to do. Besides, we have hopes that in time deliverance will come from court unto us, and therefore we yet will maintain war against thee.f This brave speech of the Lord Will-be-will, with that also of the lord-mayor, somewhat abated the boldness of Diabo- . lus, though it kindled the fury of his rage. It I he ^«P^"J^* also encouraged the townsmen and captains; yea, encouraged. .^ ^^^ ^^ ^ plaster to the brave Captain Credence's * The night of darkness and desertion was not a proper season for this ex- extion. This sally seems inte^ided to describe the prevalence cf a self confi- dent spirit, which cannot issue well; for faith, liope, and experience are wounded. . . t Whatever temporary advantage Satan may gain over a gracious soul, yet " the root of the matter remaining," it will not give place to him, or pa- tiently endure the thoughts of returning under his hellish tyranny. 208 THE HOLY WAR. •wound; for you must know that a brave speech now, when the captains of the town, with their men of war, came home routea, and wlien tlie enemy took courage and bohh'.ess at the success that he had oljtained, to draw up to the walls, and demand en- trance, at he did, vras in season, and also advantageous. The Lord Will-be-will also played the man within, for while Trr-JT t -775 the captains and soldiers were in the field, he was ,, in arms in the town, and wherever by him there ^ "' was a Diabolonian found, they were forced to feel the weight of his heavy hand, and also the edge of his penetrat- ing sword; many therefore of the Diabolonians he wounded, as the Lord Cavil, tlie Lord Brisk, the Lord Pragmatic, the Lord Mur- mur; several also of the meaner sort he sorely maimed: though there cannot at this time an account be given you of any that he slew outright. The cause, or rather the advantage that my Lord "Will-be-will had at this time to do thus, was, for that the captains were gone out to fight the enemy in the field. For now, thought the Diabolonians Avithin, is our time to stir and make an uproar in the town; what do they therefore but quickly get them- selves into a body, and fall forthwith to hurricaning in Mansoul, as if now nothing but whirlwind and tempest should be there: wherefore, as I said, he takes this opportunity to fall in among them witli his men, cutting and slashing with courage that was undaunted; at which the Diabolonians with all haste dispersed themselves to their holds, and my lord to his place as before. This brave act of my lord somewhat revenged the wrong done by Diabolus to the captains, and also let them know, that A* fl ■ h'h ^^^^"soul was not to be parted Avith, for the loss r -,1 ^ 1 of a victory or two, wherefore the wing of the t}- faith to crush ^ i- . • . i .• ? • j^- r • rant was dipt again, as to boasting, 1 mean, in comparison of what he would have done if the Diabolonians had put the town to the same plight to which he had put the captains. Well, Diabolus yet resolves to have the other bout with Man- soul; for, thought he, since I beat them once, I may beat them twice: wherefore he commanded his men to be read\- at such an hour of the night to make a fi-esh assault upon the town, and he gave it out in special, tliat they should bend all their force XT t -' ~ 1 t h '''a«'"st Feel-gate, and attempt to break into , ' ^ ' the town through that. The word that then can do upon the , ^ i • re j i i- u n 'c ,. he gave to his officers and soldiers was Hell- sense and feelins^s c * i • i i -c i. i • ,\ r ^1 I „• fii'C. And said he, it we break in upon them, of the christian. r • i i -.i -^i -.i '' as I wish we do, either with some, or with all our foi'ce, let them that break in look to it, that they forget not the word. And let notiiing be heard in the town of Mansoul, BY JOHN UUNYAN. 20? but Hell-fire, hell-fire, hell-fire ! The drummer was also to beat without ceasing, and the standard-bearers were to display their colours; the soldiers too were to put on what courage they could, and to see that they played manfully their parts against the town.* So the night being come, and all things by the tyrant made rea- dy for the work, he suddenly makes his assault upon Feel-gate, and after he had a while struggled there, he thi-ows the gates wide open; for the truth is, those gates were but weak, and so most easily made to yield. When Diabolus had thus far made his attempt, he placed his captains, to wit, Torment and No-ease, there; so he attempted to press forward, but the prince's captains came down upon him, and made his entrance more diflicult than he desired. And to speak truth, they madcAvhat resistance they could; but three of their best and most valiant captains being wounded, and by their wounds made much incapable of doing rpj f the town that service they would (and all the ^. , , '^ / rest having more than their hands full of Doubt- Jjiabolus possess j .u • ^ • .i *. r n ^ t\- \ ^ \ ^, , ^ f.^, ers, and their captams that followed Diabolus,) themsetves of the ^, ^ i ui r i • , ., •' , they were overpowered with torce, nor could to~i.v)i, lolule the ^, -^ , ,, ^ c ^\ ^ \t'u r _'. f, r they keep them out ot the town. Vvherefore cahtams of Im- ^, . . , ., ♦ • t, » i ^i ^ in. the prince s men and tlie captains betook them- , ^^ selves to the castle, as to the strong-hold of the town: and this they did, partly, for their own security partly, for the security of the town, and partly, or rather chiefly, to preserve to Immanuel the prerogative I'oyal of Mansoul, for so was the castle of Mansoul. The captains therefore being fled into the castle, the enemy, without much resistance, possessed themselves of the rest of the town, and spreading themselves as they went into every corner, they cried out as they marched, according to the command of the tyrant. Hell-fire, hell-fire, hell-fire! so that nothing for a while throughout the town of Mansoul could be heard but the direful noise of Hell-fire, together with the roaring of Diabolus's drum. And now did the clouds hang black over Mansoul, nor to i-eason, did any thing but ruin seem to attend it. Diabolus also quartered his soldiers in the houses of the inhabitants of the town of Mansoul. Yea, the subordinate preacher's house was as full of these outlandish Doubters as ever it could hold; and so * It is now determined to bend all the force of Diabolus against Feel-gate., and the cry was incessantly to be Hcll-Jlre! Hell-fire! The meaning is this: christians are to live by faith, not by sense, or feeling— they should derive their hope, not from their feelings and frames in religious duties, &c, but from Jesus alone, and his perfect righteousness. But if on the contrary, they depend on their feelings, Satan may possibly enter the soul with innunierablfi doubts, and the fear of hell-fire may be ten-ible. .S 2 2L0 THE HOLY WAR. was my Lord-mayor's and my Lord Will-be-will's also. Yea, where was there a corner, a cottage, a barn, or a hog-sty, that now was not full of these vermin? Yea, they turned tlie men of the town out of their houses, and would lie in their beds, and sit at their tables themselves. Ah, poor Mansoul ! now thou feel est the fruits of sin, and what venom was in the flattering words of Mr Carnal-security ! They made great havoc of whatever they rm 7-. 7x laid their hands on; yea, they fired the town in The Doubters , , ' .' ' i -i i i several i)laces: many vouns: cnil(U"en also Avere make qreat , ^, i i i • • .1 ^u ^ , ^. ^, by them dashed in pieces, yea, those that were havoc m the •' . , . , , . 1 • ^1 • .1 , yet unborn thev destroyed in their mother's tOIOTt - •■ Avombs; for you must needs think that it could not now be otherwise; for what conscience, what pity, what bowels of compassion can any expect at the hands of out- landish Doubters? iNIany in Mansoul that were women, both j^oung and old, they forced, ravished, and beast-like abused, so that they swooned, miscarried, and many of them died, and so lay at the top of every street, and in all by-places of the town. And now did Mansoul seem to be nothing but a den of dragons, an emblem of hell, and a place of total darkness. Now did Mansoul lie almost like the barren wilderness: nothing but net- tles, briers, thorns, weeds, and stinking things seem now to cover the face of Mansoul. I told you before, how that tliese Dia- bolonian Doubters turned the men of Mansoul out of their beds; and now I will add, they wounded them, they mauled them, yea, and almost brained many of them. Many, did I say? yea, most, if not all of them. Mr Conscience they so wounded, yea, and his wounds so festered, that he could have no ease day nor night, ^ 1 7 but lay as if continually upon a rack (but ^, ^' ■^ thatShaddai rules all, certainly they had the townsme-ii. i • 1 • ^ • w \ \t t i ^1 slam bun outngnt. ) My Lord-mayor tliey so abused that tliey almost put out his eyes; my Lord Will-be- _, ^ , , will got into the castle; thev intended to bave Satan has a par- , j , • Hi. • / »i 111 f ^ , -f chopped lum all to pieces, tor they looked up- / '-^ . on him (as his heart now stood) to be one of the ascainst a sancti- ^..i * -at 1 • . i^- 1 ^ . ... very worst that was in Mansoul against Uiabo- •^ ^ * lus and his crew. And indeedhe showed him- self a man, and more of his exploits you will hear of afterwards. Now a man might have walked for many days together in Mansoul, and scarce have seen one in the town that locked like a religious man. Oh the fearful state of Mansoul now! now ^. 1 f 17 every corner swarmed with outlandish Doubters; Ihesouljuu red-coats and black-coats walked the town by 0/ ide thoughts j,i^^gtg^,g^ ^^^^ f,ii^^^ yp j^ll ^i,g i^ouscs with hid- a;ir/6^fiV/'^'"^^«-«ous noises, vain songs, Iving stories and blasphe- BY JOHN BUN VAN. 211 raous language against Shaddai and his son. Now also those Diabolonians that lurked in the walls, and dens, and holes that were in the town of Mansoul,came forth and showed them- selves; yea, walked with open face in company with the Doubters that were in jNIansoul. Yea, they had more boldness now to walk the streets, to haunthouses, and to show themselves abroad than had any of the hon-st inhabitants of the now woful town of Mansoul. But Diabolus and his outlandish men Avere not at peace in Mansoul; for they were not there entertained as were the captains and forces of Immanuel; the townsmen browbeat them what they could: nor did they partake or make destruction of any of the necessaries of Mansoul, but that which they seized on against the townsmen's will; Avhat they could they hid trora them, and what they could not they had with an ill-will. Tliey, poor hearts, had rather have had their room than their company, but they were at present their captives, and their captives for the present thev were forced to be, Rom. vii. But I say, they discountenanced them as much as they were able, and showed them all the dislike that they could.* The captains also from the castle held them in continual play with their slings, to the chafing and fretting of the minds ot the enemies. True, Diabolus made a a great many attempts to have ,,. ^, „ . broken open the gates of the castle, but Mr Godly-fear j^j^. Godly-fear was made the keeper of that, viade keeper ^^^^^ j^^ ^^^^ ^ ^.^^^ of courage, conduct, and of ike castle- yalour, so that it was in vain, as long as life last- ^«^«*- ed within him, to think to do that work, though mostly desired; wherefore all the attempts that Diabolus made against him were fruitless. (I have wished sometime that that man had had the whole rule of the town of Mansoul. ) Well, this was the condition of the town of Man- The totvji o/g^^j f^^, ^^o^^j. ^^^Q ygj^j,, and a half; the body of the Mansoul the ^^^^.^ ^^^^ ^j^^ ^^^^ ^f ,,,ar; the people of the town seat ofimr. ^^^^^ j^.j^.^^ -^^^^ l^oles^ and the glory of Mansoul was laid in the dust; what rest then could be to the inhabitants, what peace could Mansoul have, and what sun could shine upon it? Had the enemy lain so long without in the plain against the town, it had been enough to famish them; but now when they shall be within, when the town shall be their tent, their trench, and fort against the castle that was in the town, when the town shall be against the town, and shall serve to be a defence to the enemies of her strength and life; I say, when they * This is an awful representation of the state of a soul overwhelmed with distressinff doubts of Go^'s love, and fears of eternal destruction; t«™l7^ Snd « loss of ease," take possession. The understanding: is darkened, and t!,e 212 THE HOLY WAR. ^. , shall make use of the forts and town-holds to secure themselves in, even till they shall take, spoil, and demolish the castle; this was terrible, and yet this was now the state of the town of Mansoul.* After the town of Mansoul had been in this sad and lamenta- ble condition for so long a time as I have told you, and no petitions that they had presented their prince with (all this while) could prevail, the inhabitants of the town, to wit, tJie elders, and chief of Mansoul, gather together, and after some time spent in condoling their miserable state, and this misei'able judgment coming upon them, they agreed together to draw up yet another \t ^ r 7/ f -' petition, and to send it away to Immanuel for ' , . /'•'^ relief. But Mr Godly-fear stood up, and an- advice about a n^ri 4.u ^ i- i i *i , . . swered, " 1 hat he knew his lord the prince never (Iratvincc lib a ,. , , , . .-J c 4^\ . . f ff did, nor never would receive a petition tor these * . matters from the hand of any whoever, unless the ' * lord secretary's hand was to it (and this, quoth he, is the reason you prevailed not all this while)." Then they said they would draw up one, and get the lord secretary's hand to it. But Mr Godly-fear answered again, " That he knew also that the lord secretary would not set his hand to any petition that himself had not a hand in composing and drawing up; and besides, said he, the prince doth know my lord secretary's hand from all the hands in the world; wherefore he cannot be deceived by any pretence whatever; whei-efore my advice is, that you go to my lord and implore him to lend you his aid." (Now he abode in the castle, where all the captains and men at arms were.) So they heartily thanked Mr Godly-fear, took his coun- sel, and did as he had bidden them; so they departed and came to my lord, and made known the cause of their coming to him; to wit, that since Mansoul was in so deplorable a condition, his highness would be pleased to undertake to draw up a peti- tion for them to Immanuel, the son of the mighty Shaddai, and .to their king and his father by him. Then said the secretary to them, " What petition is it that you would have me draw up for you'" But they said, Our lord knows best the state and condition ot the town of Mansoul, and how we are backslidden and degenerated from the prince; tl»ou also knowest who is come up to war against us, and how Mansoul is now the seat of war. My lord knows, moreover, conscience wouniltd; while a crowd of idle thoughts, vanities, and biaspliwnies increase the coiil'ii?.ion and dismay. * In the midst of all this misery, the castle is safe, or in other words, the lioart reiuftins right with God, Gcdiy-fear being the keeper of it. In many a soul where distressing d<)ul)ts prevail, perhai)s for years, yet th« feiir wf Ciod is in the heart so that it still cleaves to him, and opposes sin. BY JOHN BUNYAN. 213 what barbarous usage our men, women, and ebildren have suf- fered at their hands, and how our liorae-bred Diabolonians walk rr,j ^ now with more boldness than dare the townsmen The secretarii • ,, , ^ .> », it. i . . , '^ m the streets ot Mansoul. Let our lord tbere- , ^ , fore, accordins: to the wisdom of God that is in draiv tip a i • , .-.• r i • . . ^r him, draw up a petition lor his poor servants to \r 7 our prince Immanuel. " Well (said the lord se- cretary) 1 will draw up a petition tor you, and wil\ also set my hand thereto." Then said they, "But when sliall M'e call for it at the hand of our lord?" He answered, " Your- selves must be present at the doing of it. Yea, you must put your desires to it. True, the hand and pen shall be mine, bu( the ink and paper must be yours, else how can )'ou say it is your petition! Nor have I need to petition for myself, because I have not offended. He also added as followeth: " No petition goes from me in my name to the prince, and so to his father by him, but when tho people, that are chiefly concerned therein, join in heart ami soul in the matter, for that must be inserted therein."* So they heartily agreed with the sentence of the lord, and si petition was forthwith drawn up for them. But now who shall carry it, that was the next. But the seci'etary advised that Cap - tain Credence should carry it, for he was a well-spoken man. They therefore called for him, and propounded to him the busi- ness. Well, said the captain, I gladly accept of the motion; and though 1 am lame, I will do this business for you, with as much speed, and as well as I can.f The contents of the peti- tion were to this purpose: rpj J f-f- f " O oin^ loi'd and sovereign prince Imman- ^, -^ ' ^/ uel, the potent, the long-suffering prince! Grace Maiisoul to the . ' j • . \i ,• ^ ^ .u v. i . . r 7 *s poured into thv lips, and to thee belong mer- prince immanuel. ■, e • ' \^ \ i u n j •^ cy and forgiveness, though we have rebelled against thee. We who are no more worthy to be called thy Mansoul, nor yet fit to partake of common benefits, do beseech thee, and thy father by thee, to do away our transgressions. We confess that thou mightestcastus away for them, but do it not for thy name's sake; let the lord rather take an opportunity, at our miserable condition, to let out his bowels of compassion to us; * This is an illustration of that text, Rom. viii. 26. " The spirit helpeth our iiitirniities, for we know not what we should pray for as we ought," &c. The original word helpeth signifies helping togctlter, like two persons uniting to lift up a weight. Thus should we ever implore the assistance of the good spirit to indite our petitions; and (blessed be God) it is said, " He will give his holy spirit to them tlial ask him."' t Credence is a very proper person to cany the petition, for we are to pray inj'ailh. 2U THE HOLY WAR. we are compassed on eveiy side, lord; our own backslidings re- prove us, our Diabolonians within our town fright us, and the army of the angel of the bottomless pit distress us. Thy grace can be our salvation, and whither to go but to thee we know not. *' Furthermore, O gracious prince, we luive weakened our cap- tains, and they are discouraged, sick, and of late some of them grievously worsted, and beaten out of the field by the power and force of the tyrant. Yea, even those of our captains, in whose valour we formerly used to put most of our confidence, they are as wounded m.en. Besides, lord, our enemies are lively, and tliey are sti'ong, they vaunt and boast themselves, and threaten to part us among themselves for a booty. They are fallen also upon us, lord, with many thousand Doubters, such as with whora we cannot tell what to do; they are all grim-looked and unmerci- ful ones, and they bid defiance to us and thee. " Our wisdom is gone, our power is gone, because thou art departed from us, nor have we M-hat we may call ours, but sin, shame, and confusion of face for sin. Take pity upon us, O lord, take pity upon us, thy misei'able town of Mansoul, and save us out of the hands of our enemies. Amen. "* This petition, as was touched afore, was handed by the lord secretary, and carried to the court by the brave and most stout Captain Credence. Now he carried it out at Mouth-gate, for that, as I said, was the sally-port of the town; and he went, and came to Immanuel with it. Now how it eame out I do not know, but for certain it did, and that so far as to reach the ears ofDiabolus. Thus I conclude, because that the tyrant had it presently by the end, and charged the town of Mansoul Avith it; saying, "Thou rebellious and stubborn-hearted Mansoul, I will make tliee to leave c ^ . off petitioning: art thou yet for petitioning? I Satan cannot ..\ , ^, . i «• ,> V i i ... ^ will make thee to leave oti. " lea, he also " ^ ' knew who the messenger was that carried the petition to the prince, and it made him both fear and rage. Wherefore he commanded that his drum should be beat again, a thing that Mansoul could not abide to hear: but M'hen Diabolus would have his drum beat, Mansoul must abide the noise. Well, the drum was beat, and the Diabolonians were gathered together.f Then said Diabolus, "O ye stout Diabolonians, be it known unto you, that t4iere is treachery hatched against us in the re- bellious town of Mansoul; for albeit the town is in our possession, as you see, yet these miserable Mansoulians have attempted to dare, and have been so hardy as yet to send to the court of * An excellent prayerl full of humility and faith, t AVhtM Christians pray Satan lagts; for he halts the prayer of faitli, and ihviuls its cfTi ct. BY JOHN BUNYAN. 215 Iminanuel for help. This T give you to understand, that ye may yet know how to carry it to the wretched town of Mansoul. Wherefore, O my trusty Diabolonians, I command, that yet more Biabolus is en *"^ '^O'^^y^ ^'^tress this town of Mansoul, and rag-eel against ' ^^ '^ wiih your wiles, ravish their women, the toxvn of deflower their virgins, slay their children, brain J\fansoul ^^^^^^ ancients, fire tlieir town, and do what other mischief you can; and let this be the re- ward of the Mansoulians from me, for their desperate rebellion against me." This you see was the charge, but something stepped in be- twixt that and execution, for as yet there was but little more done than to rage. Moreover, when Diabolus had done thus, he went the next day up to the castle gates, and demanded that, upon pain of death, the gates should be opened to him, and that entrance should be given him, and his men that followed after. To Avhom Mr Godly-fear replied (for he it was that had the charge of the gate) " That the gate should not be opened unto him, nor to the men that followed after him." He said, moreover, " That Mansoul, when she had suffered awhile, should be made perfect, strength- ened and settled." Satan cannot '^'^^^ ^'^ Diabolus, ''Deliver me then the men abide faith. ^^^^ petitioned against me, especially Captain J ' Credence that carried it to your prince; deliver that varlet into my hands, and I will depart from the town."* Then up starts a Diabolonian, whose name was Mr Fooling, and said, "My lord offereth you fair, it is better for you that one man perish, than that your whole Mansoul should be undone." But Mr Godly-fear made him this replication: " How long will Mansoui be kept out of the dungeon, when she hath given up her faith to Diabolus? As good lose the town as lose Captain Credence, for if one be gone, the other must follow." But to that Mr Fooling said nothing. Then did my lord-mayor reply, and said, " O thou devour- ing tyrant, be it known unto thee, we shall hearken to none of thy words; we are resolved to resist thee as long as a captain, a man, a sling, and a stone to throw at thee, shall be found in the town of Mansoul. But Diabolus answered, "Do you hope, do you wait, do you Diabolus rages. |°o^/"^- help and deliverance! You have sent •= to Immanuel, but your wickedness sticks too close in your skirts to let innocent prayer come out of your lips. Think you, that you shall be prevailers, and prosper • Cciuld faith be riven up, Satan would obuiin all his desire. 216 THE HOLY WAR. in this design? you will fail in your -wish, you will fail in your attempts^ for it is not only I, but your Immanuel is against you. Yea it is he that hath sent me against you to subdue you; for what ihtJn do you hope, or by what means will you escape?" Then said my lord mayor, "We have sinned indeed, but that rr>i 1 1 , shall be no help to thee, for our Immanuel The lord-mayov^s , ,, . , ., i i . • ^ r -.u.- ■ . 1-^^*1 hath said it, and that in s:reat laithtulness, speech just at the , * , , • *v. * .i * t n • f. x', ^ ^' And hull that cometh to me I wdl in no time of the return of . ^ * j tf i .u i * ii ir^ „ ^/ . ^ , -^ wise cast out.' He hath also told us (O our Captain Credence. \ ^u ^ i ^^ r • i 1,1 1 -' enemy) that ' all manner of sin and blasphe- my shall be forgiven to the sons of men.' Therefore we dare not despair, but will look for, and wait for mercy."* And now by this time Captain Credence was come from the court from Immanuel to the castle of Mansoul, and he returned to them with a packet. So my lord-mayor, hearing that Cap- tain Credence was come, withdrew himself from the noise of the roaring of the tyrant, and left him to yell at the wall of the town, or against the gates of the castle. He then came up to the captain's lodgings, and, saluting him, asked him of his wel- fare, and what was the best news at court? but when he asked Captain Credence that, the water stood in his eyes. Then said the captain. Cheer up, my lord, for all will be well in time. And with that he first produced his packet, and laid it by, but that the lord-mayor and the rest of the captains took for a sign of good tidings. (Now a season of grace being come, he sent for all the captains and elders of tlie town that were here and there in their lodgings, in the castle, and upon their guard, to let them know that Captain Credence was returned from the court, and that he had something in general, and something in special to communicate to them.) So they all came up to him, and saluted him, and asked him concerning his journey, and Avhat Avas the best news at court! And he answered them, as he had done the lord-mayor before, that all would be well atlast.f Now when the captain had thus saluted them, he opened his The bnrh t P^^^^^t, and thence drew out of it several notes for . ", those that he had sent for. And the first note " ' was for my lord-mayor, wherein was signified: a f f " The prince Immanuel had taken it well that my ^lord-ma " lord-mayor had been so true and trusty in his ^ ' ofiice, and the great concerns that lay upon him for the town and ])eople of Mansoul. Also lie bid him to know that he took it well that he had been so bold for his prince Im- * Notliing like the jirecious promises as an answer to Satau. With the word of God our Lord himself silenced the devil in the wilderness. t This is the proper langiiag;e of faith, ''All shall be well at the last " BY JOHN BUNYAN. 217 manuel, and had engaged so faithfully in his cause against Dia- bolus. He also signified at the close of his letter, than he should shortly receive his reward." The second note that came out, was for the noble T.ord Will-be- Avill, wherein there was signified, " That his ])rince A notejor my i,^jnanuel did well understand how valiant and cou- Lord Will-be- ^^„f^^^^ j^e had been for tlie honour of his lord, now ■"'^^^- in\is absence, and when his name was under con- tempt by Diabolus. There was signified also, that his prince had taken it well that he had been so faithful to the town of Mansoul, in his keeping of so strict a hand and eye over, and so strict a rein upon the necks of the Diabolonians that still were lurking in their several holes in the famous town of Mansoul. He signified moreover, that he understood that my lord had with his own hand done great execution upon some of the chiefs of the rebels there, to the great discouragement of the adverse party, and to the good example of the whole town of Mansoul, and that short- ly his lordship should have his reward." The tliird note came out for the subordinate preacher, wherein was rignified, " That his prince took it well from A note for the j^.^^ ^,-^^^ ^^^ ^^^^ ^^ honestly and so faithfully per- siiborthnate ^^^^^^^y ^x% office, and executed the trust committed preacher. ^^ ^-^^^ ^^ j^j^ ^^^,^^ while he exhorted, rebuked, and forewarned Mansoul according to the laws of the town. " He sig- nified moreover, " that he took it well at his hand, that he called to fasting, to sack-cloth, and ashes, when Mansoul was under her revolt. Also, that he called for the aid of the Captain Boanerges to help in so mighty a work, and that shortly he also should re- ceive his reward." The fourth note came out for Mr Godly-fear, -.vherein his lord thus signified: " That his lordship observed, that A note for Mr ^^^ ^^^^^ ^^^^ ^^,^^ ^^ ^^^ ^^^ ^^^^ in Mansoul that de- Godaj-jear. ^^^^^^^ Mr Carnal-security, as the only one that, through his subtlety and cunning, had obtained for Diabolus a de- fection and decay of goodness in the blessed town of Mansoul. Moreover, his lord gave him to understand, that lie still remem- bered his tears and mourning for the state (>f Mansoul." It was also observed by the same note, "that his lord took notice of his detecting this Mr Carnal-security at his table among his gucsVs, in his own house, and that in the midst of his jolliness, even while he was seeking to perfect his villanies against the town of Mansoul. Immanuel also took notice, that this reverend person, Mr Godly- fear, stood stoutly to it at the gates of the castle against all the threats and attempts of the tyrant, and that he had put the towns T 218 THE HOLY WAR. men in a way to make iheir petition to their prinee, so as that he might accept thereof, and as that they might obtain an answer of peace; and that therefore shortly he should receive his reward." After all this, there was yet produced a note which was written a ^ /• ^7 to tiie whole town of Mansoul, wherehv they per- A note for the . , ., „,, ^ ^i • i j ^ i .^- c\\ • c ■ r nf ceived, " 1 hat their lord took notice ot their so oi- 1 ' ten repeated petitions to him, and that they should see more of the fruits of such their doings in time to come." Their prince also therein told them, " that he took it well, that their heart and mind now at last abode fixed upon him and his ways, though Diabolus had made such inroads upon them, and that, neither flatteries on the one hand, nor hardships on the other, could make them yield to serve his cruel designs. There ■was also inserted at the bottom of this note, "that his lordship had left the town of Mansoul in the hands of the lord secretary, and under the conduct of Captain Credence; saying. Beware that you yet yield yourselves unto their governance, and in due time you shall receive your reward."* After the brave Captain Credence had delivered his notes to those to whom they belonged, he retired himj,elf to my lord se- cretary's lodgings, and there spends his time in conversing with him; for they two were very great one with another, and indeed knew more how things would go with INIansoul than all the towns- men besides. The lord secretary also loved Captain Credence dearlv, yea, many a good bit was sent liim from my lord's tablcf also he might have a show of countenance when the rest of Man- soul lay under the clouds; so after some time for converse Avas spent, the captain betook himself to his chamber to rest. But not long after my lord sent for the captain again; so the captain came to him, and they greeted one another with usual salutations. Then said the captain to the lord secretary, " What hath my lord to say to his servant?" So the lord secretary took him and had him . aside, and, after a sign or two of more favour, he Captain Lre- ^^j^^ ^, ^ j^^^^ xv\^iXQ tiiee the lord-lieutenant over deuce made ^^j ^^^^ ^^^,^^^ .^^ Mnnsoul; so that from this day lord-aeutenant f^^^.^.^^.^j ^^^ ^^^ ;„ ^Nlansoul shall be at thy word, over allthe forces ^^^^ thou shalt be he that shall lead in, and that -n Mansoul. ^^^^^ j^.^^^ ^^^ Mausoul. Thou shalt therefore nanage, according to thy i)lace, the war for thy prince, and for he town of Mansoul, against the force and power of Diabolus, and t thy command shall the rest of the captains be." * In due time bflicvers " shall reap, if they faint not." The Lord observes and approves the works of faith and the labours of love here mentioned, and none of them shall lose its reward. Mlie honest efforts of the understanding, the will, the juscitncc, ai»d the liar oi" Cod, tltall, at length, be crowned with success. Captain Credence in confcreiice ivith ^g±f^^^ the Lord Secretary. .=^== p. 218. llllllB^ BY JOHN EUNYAN 219 Now the townsmen bejijan to perceive what interest the captain had, both with the eomt and also Avith the lord ■ "The townsmen secretary in Mansoul; for no man before could desire to be put gpeed when sent, nor bring such good news from under the gov- ji^n^^nuel as he. Wherefore what do they (af- ernment of Lap- ^^^ ^^^^^ lamentation that they made no more use tarn C'^edence. ^f j^j^ j^ t^^.^, distress) but send by their subor- dinate preacher to the lord secretary, to desire him that all that ever they were and had might be put under the government, care, custody, and conduct of Captain Credence."* So their preacher went and did his errand, and received this answer from the mouth of his lord, That Captain Credence; should, be the great doer in all the king's army against tlie king's enemies, and also for the welfare of Mansoul. So he bovred to the ground, and thanked his lordship, and returned and told his news to the townsfolk. But all this was done with all imaginable secrecy, because the foes had yet great strength in tlie town. But to re- turn to our story again. CHAPTER XVI. A new plot is laid to ruin the town by Riches and Prosperity. Immanuel ap- pears in the Field to assist the Forces of ilansoul^ whereby the whole army of Doubters is completely routed. Immanuel enters the towu amidst the 7iiost joy- ful acclamations of the inhabitants. WHEN Diabolus saw himself thus boldly confronted by the lord-mayor, and perceived the stoutness of Mr Godly-fear, he fell .into a rage, and forthwith called a council of war, tliat he might be revenged on jNIansoul. So all the princes of the pit came to- gether, and old Incredulity at the head of them, with all the cap- tains of his army. So they consulted what to do. Now the ef- fect and conclusion of tlie council that day was, how they might take the castle, because tltey could not conclude Uiemselves mas- ters of the town so long as that was in the posdession of their ene- mies. So one advised this way, and another advised that; bu when they could not agree in their verdict, Apol- Diff event Jit de- ments in Diabo- lyon, the president of the council, stood up, and thus he began: My brotherhood (quoth he) I lus''s council of , «u- .. j * a ■^ hr.ve some thmgs to propound unto you^ and ray ^ ' first is this: Let us withdraw oui'selves from * The design of this is, to show that the soul is to live by faith, and not by *ense. The s^jiritof God puts honour upou iiiith, and makes liim chief captain in the town. This is a token for good, now the Doubters prevail in the town. This is a prelude of victory over them. The inhabitants are, at length, aware ■of his abilities, and wish to be under las control. Thus Christians learn, but eeldom without jjuinfui experience, that they are not tu live by theii- feelings, tjui by tJicir faith. 220 THE HOLY WAR. the town into the plain again, for our presence here will do us no good, because the castle is yet in our enemies' liands; nor is it pos- sible that we should take that, so long as so many brave captains arc in it, and this bold fellow Godly-fear is made the keeper of the gates of it. " Now when we have Avithdrawn ourselves into the plain, they of their own accord will be glad of some little ease, and it maybe of their own accord they again may begin to be remiss, and even their so being will give them a bigger blow than we can possibly give them ourselves. But if that should fail, our going forth out of the town may draw the captains out after us, and you know "what it cost them when we fought them in the field before. Be- sides, can we but draw them out into the fields, we may lay an am- bush behind the town, which shall, when they are co-rae forth abroad, rush in, and take possession of the castle." But Beelze- 7? l-r 1 J h ^ stood up and replied; saying, it is impossible 'to draw them all off from the castle; some, you may ^ ' be sure, will lie there to keep that; wherefore it will be but in vain thus to attempt, unless we were sure that they will all come out. He therefore concluded, that Avhat was done must be done by some other means. And the most likely means that the greatest of their heads could invent, was that which Apol- lyon had advised to before; to wit, to get the townsmen again to sin. For, said he, it is not our being in the town, nor in the field, nor our fighting, nor our killing of their men, that can make us ^^ - the masters of Mansoul; for so long as one in the MoAisoui cannot ^^^^,^ j^ ^^^^ ^^ y^^^ ^p j^j^ ^^^^^ against us, Im- r ^^ 7 ' A V manuel will take their parts, and if he shall the inliabitcnts ^^^^ ^^^^j^ ^^^^ ^^^ ^^^.^^ ^^,^^^ ^ ^j^^ ^ , do not consent to. ^^ ^vdl be with us. Wherefore, for my part, ^^^' quoth he, there is, in my judgment, no way to bring them into bondage to us like inventing a wny to make them sin, 2 Pet. ii. 18, 19, 20, 21. Had we, said he, left all our Doubters at home, we had done as well as we have done now, unless we could have made them the masters and gover- nors of tiie castle; for Doubters at a distance are but like objections repelled with arguments. Indeed, can we but get them into the hold, and make them possessors of that, the day will be our own. Let us therefore w ithdraw ourselves into the plain (not expecting that the captains in Mansoul should follow us,) but yet, I say, lei us do this; and before we do so, let us advise again with our trusty Diabolonians that are yet in the holds of Mansoul, and set them to work to betray the town to us; for they indeed must do it, or it will be left undone forever. By these sayings of Beelzebub (fori think it was he. that gave this counsel,) the whole conclave was BY JOHN BUNYAN. 221 forced to be of his opinion; to wit, tliat the way to get tlie castle was to get the town to sin. Then they fell to inventing by what means they might do this thing.* Then Lucifer stood up and said, "The counsel of Beelzebub is pertinent; now the way to bring this to pass, in my opinion, is this: Let us withdraw our force from the town of Mansoul: let us do this: and let us terrify them no more, either with summonses or threats, or with the noise of our drum, or any other awakening means. Only let us lie in the field at a distance, and be as if we re- garded them not (for frights I see do but awakenthem, and make them stand more to their arms. ) I have also another Lucifer proposes ^^^,^^^ ;„ ,^y i^ead: you know Mansoul is a another stratagem ^^^^,.^^^^0,^.1,^ ^ town that delights in commerce; for the taking oj ^^^^^^ therefore if some of our Diabolonians shall Mansoul ^^j^^^ themselves far countrymen, and shall go out and bring to the market of Mansoul some of our wares to sell; and what matter at what rates they sell their wares, though it be butfor half the worth? Now let those that thus trade in their market be those that are witty and true to us, and I will lay my crown to pawn, it will do. There are two that are come to my thoughts already, tlwit I think will be arch at this work, and they are, Mr Penny-wise-pound-foolish, and Mr Get-i'tli-hundred-and- 'o«!p-i'th-shire; nor is this man with the long name at all inferior to the other. What also if you join with them jNIr Sweet-world and Mr Present-good, they are men that are civil and cunning, and our true friends and helpers. Rev. iii. 17. Let these, with as ma- ny more engage in this business for us, and let Mansoul be taken up in much business, and let them grow full and rich, and this is the way to get ground of them; remember ye not, that thus we prevailed upon Laodicea, and how many at present do Ave hold in this snare! Now when they begin to grow full they will forget their misery, and, if we shall not afright them, may happen to fall asleep and so be got to neglect their town-watch, their castle- watch as well as their watch at the gates, f "Yea, may we not bv this means so cumber The deceitf Illness j^^^^g^ul with abundance, that they shall be forced of riches. ^^ ^^^^ ^^ ^j^^j^^. ^.^gtle a warehouse, instead of a garrison fortified against as, and a receptacle of men of war* Thus if we get our goods and commodities thither, I reckon that * The gi-eat object of temptation is to allure U3 to sin. Satan cannot hope to Dossess the heart until it be first brought over to the side of nnquity. t " Penny-wise and pound-foolish," &c. are proverbial expressions, denoting the folly of those who are anxious to obtain small gains, while they neglect large profits. Satan having found that his doubts and fears did not succeed, but had rather kept men alert, now proposes to try the eftect of worldly prosperity, as likely to produce carelessness. And indeed great is the danger, when the cu^tl^, (the heart) which should be the temi)le of the Lord, is turned into a warehouse. T 2 222 THE HOLY WAR. the castle is more than half ours. Besides, could we so order it, that (hey should he filled with such kind of wares, then, if we made a sudden assault upon them, it would be hard for the captain to take a shelter there. Do you know that of the parable, Luke viii. 14. " The deceitfulness of riches chokes the work." And again, "When the heart is overcharged with surfeiting and drunkeaness, and the cares of this life, all mischief comes upon them unawares. " Cliap. y.xi. 84, 35, 36. "Furthermore, my lords, (quoth he) you very well know that it is not easy for a people to he filled with our things, and not to have some of our Diabolonians as retainers to their houses and services. Where is a Mansoulian that is full of this world, that has not for his servants and Avaiting-men, Mr Profuse, or Mr Prodigality, or some other of our Diaboloriiangang; as Mr Volup- tuousness, Mr Pragmatical, Mr Ostentation, or the like? Now these can take the castle of Mansoul, or blow it up, or make it unfit for a garrison for Immahuel, and any of tliese will do. Yea these, for augiit I knov/, may do it for us sooner than an army of twenty thousand men. Wherefore, to end as I began, my advice is, that we quietly withdraw ourselves, not offering any further force or forcible attempt upon the castle, at least at this time, and let us set on foot our new project, and let us see if that will not make them destroy themselves.* This advice was highly applauded by them all, and was account- y .J. , J . ed the very master-piece of hell, to wit, to choke / ^ J 7 7/ Mansoul w^ith a fulness of this world, and to surfeit ,, ^^ ^ her heart with the good things thereof. But see how things meet together. Just as this Diabolonian council was broken up Captain Credence received a letter from Immanuel, the contents of which were these: "That upon the third day he would meet him in the field, in the plains about Mansoul. " Meet me in the field ! quoth the Captain. What mean- a f f, ct'^ '^'X lord by this? I know not what he meaneth by , •' . meeting me in the field. So he took the note in his hand, and carried it to my Lord Secretary, to ask his thoughts thereupon (for my lord was a seer in all matters concerning the king, and also for the good and comfort of the town of Mansoul. So, he showed my lord the note, and desired his opinion thereon: for my part, quoth Captain Credence, I know not the meaning thereof. So my lord read it, and after a little pause he said, "The Diabolonians have liad against Mansoul a great consultation to-day; they have, I say, this day been contriving the utter ruin * How rart'ly do men grow rich and prospi. rpus without entertaining those Di- abohiiiians, profusion, prodigality, pride, ^z.\ These are Satan's best support* era, and more destructive to the soul than an army of external foes. BY JOHN DUNYAN. 223 of the town; and the result of theu' counsel is, to set Mansoul into such a way, which, if taken, will surely make her destroy herself. And to this end tliey are makinj^ ready for their own departure out of the town, intending to betake themselves to field again, and there to lie till they shall see whether this tlieir project will take or no. But be tliou ready with the men of thy Lord (for on the third day they will be in the plain) there to fall upon the Diabo- lonians; for the prince will by t!iat time be in the field; yea, by that it is break of day, sun rising or before, and that with a mighty force against them. So he shall be before them, and thou shalt be behind them, and betwixt you both their army shall be destroyed." When Captain Credence heard this, away goes he to the rest of the captains, and tells tliem what a note he had a while since received from the hand of Immanuel. And, said he, that which was dark therein has my Lord Secretary expounded unto me. He told them moreover, what by himself and by them must be done to answer the mind of their Lord. Then Avere the captains glad, and Cap- tain Credence commanded, that all the king's trumpeters should rrM 7 • , ^ ascend on the battlements of the castle, and . ^ "^ , , there m the audience ot Diabolus, and ot the peters commanded ,,^ ^^r i 1.^11,^. \ J r w whole town 01 Mansoul, make the best music to sound from the ^. . ■, ^ , , . ,. rr^i ^ ^ .1 ^, '^ that heart could invent. The trumpeters then did as they Avere commanded: they got them- selves up to the top of the castle, and thus they began to sound. Then did Diabolus start, and said, What can be the meaning of this? they neither sound Boot-and-saddle, nor Horse-and-away, nor a Charge. What do these madmen mean, that yet they should be so merry and glad? Then answered him one of themselves, and said. This is for joy that their prince Immanuel is coming to relieve the town of Mansoul; that to this end he is at the head of an army, and that this relief is near.* The men of Mansoul also were greatly concerned at this melo- dious charm of the trumpets; they said, yea, they answered one another, saying. This can be no harm to us; surely this can be no harm to us. Then said the Diabolonians, What had we best to do ? And it was answered, It was best to quit the town; and that, said one, ye may do in pursuance of your last counsel, and by so doing also be better able to give the enemy battle, should an army from -nil -1 without come Upon us. So on the second day they r ^1 withdreAv themselves from Mansoul, and abode araivs from the • ^, , • -.i ^ i, .. ^1 i .u •' , , in the plains Avithout; but they encamped them- toivn, and ~vhv. , , ^ ,. t^ / . , .. ^ 1 ^ • ' selves beiore Eye-gate, in what terrene and tern- * The saints are kepi by the power of God. How seasonably is this relief pro- mised! " In the mount it shall be seen." And nothing can so encourage us in our spiritual warfare as the expectation of the Lord's power and presence. set THE HOLY WAR. ble manner they could. The reason why they coald not abide in the town (besides the reasons that were debated in their late conclave,) was, for that they were not possessed of the strong-hold, and be- cause, said they, we shall have more convenience to fight, and also to fly, if need be, when we are encamped in the open plain. Be- sides tlie town would have been a pit for them, rather than a place of defence, had the prince come up and inclosed tliem fast therein. Therefore they betook themselves to the field, that they might also be out of the reach of the slings by which they were mucli an- noyed all the while they were in the town. 7A t' e c n Well, the time that the captains were to fall upon: - ., ... the Uiaboloniansbeingcome.theveagerlv prepared for the captains ^, , ,, . ^^- r, •"' /^ i i • ^ £ 1 4^ ^1 themselves tor action: tor Gj.ptain Credence bavins: to /iiy-ht them. ^ , , ,, , • - t. .i . ., , ,*? •^ '^ told the captains over night, that they should meet their prince in the field to-morrow, was like oil to a flaming fire: for of a long time they had been at a distance; they therefore were for this the more earnest and desirous of the work. So, as I said, the hour being come, Captain Credence, with the rest of the rr,, 7 ^men of war, drew out their forces before it was day They draiv out , . ,, . c^\, ^ * i u • ^^ i ' f fj fill by the sally-port ot the town. And being all ready, •^ ' Captain Credence went up to the head of the army, and gave to the rest of the captains tlie word, and they to the un- der officers and soldiers, which was, "The sword of the Prince Immanuel, and the shield of Captain Credence!" which is in the Mansoulian tongue, "The word of God and Faith." Then the captains fell on, and began roundly to front and flank and rear Dia- bolus's camp.* Now they left Captain E.xperience in the town, because he was ill of his wounds which the Diabolonians had given him in the last figlit. But when he perceived that the captains were at it, what does he but, calling for his crutches in haste, gets up and away he goes to the battle, saying, Shall 1 lay here when my breth- ren are in the fight, and when Immanuel the prince will show himself in the field to his servants? But when the enemy saw the man come Avith his crutches, they were daunted yet the more, for, thought they, what spirit has possessed these Mansoulians, that they ' fight us upon their criitclies! Well, the captains, as I said, fell on, and bravely handled their weapons, still crying out, and shouting as tliey laid on blows, " The sword of the Prince Immanuel, and tlie shield of Captain Credence !" Now when Diabolus saw that the captains were come out, and that so valiantly they surrounded his men, he concluded, that for the present nothing from them was to be looked for but blows, Avitli i;he dints of their two-edged swords.- Wherefore he also falls ' " The word of God, and KaiUi." Tliese are invincible w^ apons. BY JOHN BUNYAN. 225 upon tlie prince's army with all his deadly force. So the battle was joined. Now who was it that at first Diabolus met The battle ^^j^^^ j^^ ^j^^ fii^ht, but Captain Credence on the one hand, joined. ^^^^ ^^^^ Lord'will-be-will on tlic other 5 now Will-be- will's blows were like the blows of a giant, for that man had a strong arm, and he fell in upon the Election-doubters, for they were the life-guard of Diabolus, and he kept them in play a good while, cutting and battering shrewdly. Now when Captain Credence saw my lord engaged, he stoutly on the other hand fell upon the same company also, so they put them to great disorder. Now Captain Good-hope had engaged the Vocation-doubters, and they were sturdy men; but the captain was a valiant man: Captain Ex- perience also sent him some aid; for he made the Vocation-doubt- ers retreat.* The rest of the armies were hotly engaged, and that on every side, and the Diabolonians fought stoutly. Then my Lord Secretary commanded that the slings from the castle should be played, and his men could throw stones at a hair's breadth. But after a while those that fled before the captains of the prince began to rally again, and they came up stoutly upon / he battle re- ^^^ ^,^^^, ^^ ^i^^ prince's army, wherefore the prince's newed. army began to faint; but remembering they should see the face of their prince by and by, they took courage, and a very fierce battle was fought. Then shouted the captains, saying, *'The sword of the Prince Immanuel, and the shield of Captain Credence!" and with that Diabolus gave back, thinking that more aid had been come. But no Immanuel as yet appeared. More- over the battle hung in doubt; and they made a little retreat on ^ both sides. Now iu the time of respite. Captain They both retreat, q^^^^^^^^ bravely encouraged his men to stand and in the tune oj ^^ .^^ ^^^ Diabolus did the like, as well as he respite Captain ^^^^^j g^^^ Captain Credence made a brave Credence makes a ^^^^^ ^^ ,^j^ soldiers, the contents whereof speechtohissol- j^..^^ fo^ow: '^^" " Gentlemen soldiers, and my brethren in this design, it rejoiceth me much to see in the field, for our prince this day so stout and so valiant an army, and faithful lovers of Mansoul. You have hitherto, as hath become you, shown your- selves men of truth and courage against the Diabolnnian forces, so that for all their boast, they have not yet cause much to boast of their gettings. Now take to yourselves your wonted courage, and show yourselves men, even this once only; for in a few minutes after the next engagement, this time, you shall see your prince * There may be long and violent conflicts in the soul between doubts and faith: doubts, whether or not we are chosen, called, &c. but faith shall at length pre- liva, and Satan Avith his doubters, --r,, ^ ^ ^ in Mansoul tor a man to entertaui strangers; That I also nourished them is true; and wliy sliould my cliarity be bla- med? As for the reason why I wished ten thousand of them in Mansoul, I never told it to the witnesses, nor to themselves. I might wish them to be taken, and so my wish might mean well to JNIansoul, for aught that any yet knows. I also bid tliemtake heed that they fell not into the captain's hands, but that might be because 1 am unwilling that any man should be slain, and not because 1 ■would have the king's enemies, as such, escape.* My lord-mayor then replied, that though it was a virtue to en--- tertain strangers, yet it was treason to entertain the king's enemies. And for what else thou hast said, thou dost by words but labour to evade, and defer the execution of judgment. But could there he no more proved against thee but that tliou art a Diabolonian, thou must for that die the death of the law; but to be a receiver, a nourisher, a countenancer, and a harbourer of others of them, yea of outlandish Diabolonians; yea, of them that come from far, on purpose to cut off and destroy our Mansoul; this must notbe borne. Then said Evil-questioning, I see how the game will go. I must die for my name, and for my charity. And so held his peace. Then tliey called the outlandish Doubters to the bar, and the first . -If of them that was arraigned was the Election-Doubt- *^ r-z^y- ^^"i ^" '*^^ indictment was read, and because he was Mr h^lecUon- ^^^ outlandishman, the substance of it was told to him u-o e) . ^^ ,^^^ interpreter; to wit, "that he was there charged * He a.iswers with much subtlety, and pretends to great charity, but he is a rue Diabu!ouian, aud ou^lil to die. BY JOHN BUNYAN. 24S with beinsr an enemy to Tmmanuel the prince, a hater of the town of INIansoul, and an opposcr of her most wholesome doctrine. Then the judge asked him if he would plead; hut he said only this, "That he confessed that he was an Election-Doubter, and that was'the religion that he had ever been brought up in. And said moreover. If I must die for my religion, I trow I shall die a mar- tyr, and so I care the less." Then the judge replied, To question election is to overthrow a great doctrvne of the gospel; to wit, the omniscience, and power, and will of God, to take away the liberty of God with his creature, to stumble the faith of the toAvn of Mansoul, and to make salvation to depend upon works, and not upon grace. It also belied the word, and disquieted the minds of the men of Mansoul, therefore by the best of laws lie must die.* Then was the Vocation-doubter called, and set to the bar; and his indictment for substance was the same with the Vocation-doubt- ^^^^^^.^ ^^j^, j^^ ^^^^ particularly charged with de- erset to the bar. ^^j^^ ^j^^ ^^^y^^„ ^f xMansoul. The judge asked him also what he had to say for himself? So he replied, " That he never believed that there was any such thing as adistiactand powerful call of God to Mansoul, otherwise than^'by the general voice of the word, nor by that neither, otker- wise than as it exhorted them to forbear evil, and to do that which is good, and in so doing a promise of happiness is annexed." Then said the judge, Thou art a Diabolonian, and hast denied a great part of one of the most experimental truths of the prince of the town of Mansoul; for he has called, and she has heard a most distinct and powerful call of her Immanuel, by which she has been quickened, awakened, and possessed with heavenly grace to desire to have communion with her prince, to serve him, and to do his will, and to look for her happiness merely of his good pleasure. And for thine abhorrence of this good doctrine thou must die the death, t Then the Grace-Uoubter was called, and his indictment was read, and he replied thereto. That though he was of the Grace- Doubter. ^^^_^^ of Doubling, his father was the offspring of a Pharisee, and lived in good fashion among his neighbours, and that he taught them to believe (and I believe I do and will) that Man- soul shall never be saved freely by grace. Then said the judge. Why, the l-aw of the prince is plain, nega- tively, "not of works:" 2. Positively, "By grace you are saved," Rom. iii. Eph. ii. And thy religion settleth in and upon the works * Those who denv election deny (though perhaps unwittingly) the omniscience and soveiergnty of God, and unavoidably assert, (sometimes without perceiving '^VTh^'^liSs^f^K^aS^^rS^niluence of the H^^^ Spirit are advocates for salvation by works; that dangerous leaven of the Pharisees. 244 THE HOLY WAR. of the flesh; for the Avorks of the law are the works of the flesh. Besides, in saying^, " Thouhast done," thou hast robbed God ofhis glory, and given it to a sinful man; thou hast robbed Christ of the necessity of his undertaking, and the sufhciency thereof, and hast given both these to the Mork of the flesh. Thou liast despised the work of the Holy Ghost, and hast magnified the will of the flesh, and of the legal mind. Thou art a Uiabolonian, the son of a Dia- bolonian; and for thy Diabolonian principles thou must die.* The court then having proceeded thus far with them, sent out . . the jury, who forthwith brought them in guilty of 1 he prisoners ^^^^,^^ ^j^^^^ ^^^^^ ^^^ ^^^^ recorder, and address- arejQWidgmUij, ^^ himself to the prisoners: You, the prisoners at and sentenced to ^,^^ ^^^.^ ^^^^ j^^^^^ ^^^^^ ^^^^^^ indicted, and proved ^* guiJty of high crimes against Tnamanuel our prince, and against the welfare of the famous town of Mansoul: crimes for which you must be put to death; and die 3'e accordinglj'. So they were sentenced to the death of the cross: the place assign- ed them for execution -was that Avhere Diabolus drew up his last army against ]Mansoul; save only that old Evil-questioning was hanged at the top of Bad-street, over against his own door.f CHAPTER XVIII. More Diabolonians tried and condemned. The work concludes with an admi- rable speech of Immanuel to the inhabitants, in which he recites his gracious acts, and informs them that he intenus to rebuild the town in a more glorious manner, recommending, in the mean lime, a suitable conduct. WHEX the town of jNIansoul had thus far rid themselves of their enemies, and of the troublers of their peace, in tlie next place a strict commandment was given out, that yet my Lord Will- be-will should, Avith Diligence his man, search for, and do his best to apprehend -what town Diabolonians were yet left alive in . . JNIansoul. The names of several of them were, A commission ^j^. Fooling, Mr Let-good-slip, Mr Slavish-fear, g-ranted to ap- _^j^, Xo-love, Mr .Alistrust, Mr Flesh, and Mr preliendthe siotb. It was also commanded that he should rest of the Uia- j^pj,j.ehcnd Mr Evil-questioning's children that he bolonians. j^^,-^ behind him, that they should demolish his house there; Mr Doubt was his eldest son; the next to him was Legal-life, Unbelief, Wrong-thoughts-of-Christ, Clip-prgmise, * To insisst upon salvation by works is utterly to deny grace: for, as the apostle argues. Gall. ii. 21. " If ri^fbttousiu ss come by the law, then Christ is dead in vani," and thus the grace of God is entirely frustrated. t The author does not mean that pei-sons maintaininpf these opinions ought to be put to death; he designs only the death or destruction of those pernicious errors, which, even as the lusts of the flesh, must Ih; mortified. BY JOHN RUNTYAN. 245 Carnal-sense, Live-by-feel, Self-love. All these he had by one wife, and her name Avas No-hope, she was tlie kinswoman of old Incredulity, for he Avas her uncle, and when her father, old Dark was dead, he took her and brought her uj), and when she Mas marriageable, he gave her to this old Evil-questioning to wife.* Xow tlie Lord Will-be-will put into execution his commission, Avith Great Diligence his man. He took Fooling in the streets, and hanged him up in Want-wit-alley, over against his own house. This Fooling was he that Avould have had the town of Mansoul deliver up Captain Credence into the hands of Diabolus, provided that then lie would have withdrawn his force out of the town: he also took Mr Let-good-slip one day as he was busy in the market, and executed him according to law. Now there was an honest poor man in Mansoul, and his name was Mr Meditation, one of no great account in the days of apostacy; but now of repute with the best of the town. This man therefore we were Avilling to prefer. Now Mr Let-good-slip had a great deal of wealth heretofcve in ]VIansoul, and at Immanuel's coming it was sequestered to the use of tlie prince; this therefore v/as now given to Mr Meditation to improve for the common good, and after him to his son Mr Think-well; this Think-well he had by Mrs Piety his wife, and she was the daughter of Mr Recorder.f After this my lord appreliended Clip-promise; now because Clit)-i)ro7nise ^^ ^^^^ ^ notorious villain (for by his doings apprehended ^"'^'^ of the king's coin Avas abused,) therefore J.;.i „ ;^ ' he Avas made a public example. He Avas arraigned, tried, andean- j i- , , , /> ' . , •,, "^ \ victed ^ adjudged to be first set in the pdlory, and then to be Avhipped l)y all the children and ser- vants in Mansoul, then to be hanged till he Avas dead. Some may wonderat the severity of this man's punishments, but they that are honest traders in Mansoul, are sensible of the great abuse that one clipper of promises in little time may do to the town of Mansoul. And truly my judgment is, that all those of his name and life should be served even as he.\ He also apprehended Carnal-sense, and put him in hold ; but r^r^ni o^,,oo ^^^^ it came about I cannot tell, but he broke prison, and made his escape. \ ea, and the bold villain aviU not yet quit the town, but lurks in the Diabolonian dens a-days, * The names of these gentry will sufficiently shoAV the necessity of d';stroying them; they are all enemies to soul-prosperity. I Great is the advantage of meditation; a practice, alas! in Avhich Christians in general are too backward. And O how much is lost by letting the word slip, which ought to be laid up, and pondered in the heart. This is the Avay to be- come spiritually rich. % To curtail or diminish the precious promises, which are as valuable tea spi ritual life as the sterling coin of the kingdom to commerce, is highly cnmmal. V 2 24G THE HOLY WAR. and haunts like a ghost honest men's houses a-nights. Wherefore there was a proclamation set up in the market-place in Mansoul, signifying, that whosoever could discover Carnal- sense, and ap- prehend him and slay him, should be admitted daily to the prince's table, and should be made keeper of the treasure of Mansoul. Many therefore bent themselves to do this thing ; buttake him and slay him they could not, though he was often discovered. But my Lord took Mr Wrong-thoughts-of-Christ, and put him in prison, and he died of a lingering consumption.* Self-love was also taken and committed to custody, but there c, jr J .7 were many that were allied to him in Mansoul, Self-love taken , . . •; ^ , ^ , , . , ,, ^ en In 5 iiK crmr^nr was fiotpprffl • >iir qi- lief- \T i/ito custody so his judgment was deferred; but at last Mr , •^ J Selt-denial stood un and said. It such villains as and executed ^, , • r j ^ • aV i t -h i / /T* 9 If these may be winked at in Mansoul, I will lay J -' * /" dov/n my commission. He also took him from the crowd, ar^d had him among his soldiers, and there he was brained. But some in Mansoul muttered at it, though none durst speak plainly, because Immanuel was in the town. But this brave act of Captain Self-denial came to the prince's ears, so he sent for him and made him a lord in Mansoul. My Lord Will-be-will also obtained gi'eat commendations of Immanuel for what he had done for the town of INIansoul. Then my Lord Self-denial took courage, and set to the pursuing of the Diabolonians ^Yith my Lord Will-be-will; and they took Live-by-feeling, and they took Legal-life, and put them in hold till they died. But Mr Unbelief Avas a nimble Jack, him they could never lay hold of, though they attempted to do it often. He therefore, and some few more of the subtlest of the Diabolonian tribe, yet remained in Mansoul, to the time that Mansoul left off to dwell any longer in the kingdom of Universe. But they kept them to their dens and holes; if one of them appeared, or hap- pened to be seen in any of the streets of the town of Mansoul, the whole town would be in arms after them, yea, the very children in Mansoul would cry out after them as after a thief, would wish that they might stone them to death with stones. And now Mansoul arrivod to some degree of peace and quiet, her prince also abode within her borders, her captains also, and her soldiers did their duties, and Mansoul minded her trade that she had with the country afar off; also she was busy in her manufacture. Isa. xxxiii. 17. Phil. iii. 20. Prov. xxx. 10, &c.+ ' Carnality, sealed in the corporal senses, is abittcrenemy; and very difficult to be detected and destroyed. The holiest bL-liever may say, with St Paul, " I am (comparatively) carnal." But wrong thoughts ol" Christ, which are also singularly injiirous, will g-i-adu;illy decline in ihc heart ofutrue believer. f Self-denial must he opposnl to" self-love. "If, through the si)irit, we mortify tJiedeeds of the body, we shall live," and shall also haply esperience, " that to he BY JOHN BUNYAN. 247 When the town of Mansoul had thus fiir rid themselves of so many of their enemies, and the troublers of their peace, the prince sent to them, and appointed a day therein he would meet the whole people at the market-place, and there give them in charge concerning the future matters, that, if observed, would tend to their farther safety and comfort, and to the condemnation and destruc- tion of their home-bred Diabolonians. So the day appointed was come, and the townsmen met together; Immaniiel also came down in his chariot, and all his captains in their state attending of him on the right hand, and on the left. Then w as an O yes made for silence, and, after some mutual carriages of love, the prince be- gan, and thus proceeded: " You, my INIansoul, and the beloved of mine heart, many and ImmanuH's ^^'^^^ ^^^ ^^^ privileges that I have bestowed upon you: speech to ^ ^^^^^ singled you out from others, and have chosen Matisoul ^'°^ *^° myself, not for your worthiness, but for mine own sake. I have also redeemed you, not only from the dread of my father's law, but from the hand of Diabolus. This I have done, because I loved you, and because I have set my heart upon you to do you good. 1 liave also, that all things that might hinder thy way to the pleasures of paradise might be taken out of the way, laid down for thee, for tliy soul, a plenary satisfac- tion, and bought thee for myself; a price not of corruptible things, as of silver and gold, but a price of blood, mine own blood, which I have freely spilt upon the ground to make thee mine. So I have reconciled thee, O ray Mansoul, to my Father, and intrusted thee in the mansion-houses that are with my Father in the royal city, where things are, O my Mansoul, that eye hath not seen, norhatli entered into the heart of man to conceive. *' Besides, O my Mansoul, thou seest what I have done, and how I have taken thee out of the hand of thine enemies; unto whom ImmaiiuePs ^^°^^ ^^^^^' deeply revolted from my Father, and by p-reat love to ^^'^'^"^ ^^°^ ^'^^^ content to be possessed, and also to McmsouL ^^ destroyed. I came to thee first by my law, then by my gospel, to awaken thee and show thee my glorv. And thou knowest what thou Avast, what thou saidst, whattliou didst, and how many times thou rebelledst against my fathei^ and me; yet I left thee not, as thou seest this day, but came to thee, have bore thy manners, have waited upon thee, and, after all, accepted of thee even of my mere grace and favour; and would not suffer tliee to be lost, as thou most willingly '%ouldst have been. I also compassed thee about, afflicted thee on every side, that I might spiritually minded is life and peace." But after ail, that viViaui Uiibe;ief, the worst of all the gang, still lurks secretly i' the soul, yet is iniiformly opiy.sed whenever he dares to appear. 248 THE HOLY WAR. make tlice Avcaiy of lliy ways, and briiip; down tliy heart with molestation to a willingness to close with tliy good and happiness. And when 1 had gotten a complete conquest overthee, I turned it 10 thy advantage. " Thou seest also what a company of my father's host I have lodged within thy borders, captains, and rulers, soldiers, men of war, engines, and excellent devices, to subdue and bring down thy foes; thou knowest my meaning, O ]Mansoul. And they are my servants, and thine too, Mansoul. Yea, my design of possess- ing of thee with them, and the natural tendency of each of them, is to defend, purge, strengthen, sweeten thee for myself, O Mansoul, and to make thee meet for my father's presence, blessing, and glory; for thou, my JNIansoul, art created to be prepared ur.to these. *'Thou seest moreover, my Mansoul, how I have passed by thy T.,r , , backslidin2;s, and have healed thee. Indeed I was JSlansQul saved • i i i . x i ^ i - , angr)- with thee, but I have turned away mv an- ^ . , r srer, and mine indignation is ceased in the des- miea oil Imma- ? '• r- .i • • r\ •\r i xt j-j J, \ , truction 01 thine enemies, O Mansoul. A or did . ^ ^ ' thy goodness fetch me again unto thee, after that ^' I for thy transgressions had hid my face, and withdrawn my presence from thee. The way of backsliding was tliine, but the way and means of recovery was mine. I invented the means of thy return; it was I that made a hedge and a wall, when thou wast beginning to turn to things in Avhich I delighted not. It was I that made thy sweet bitter, thy day night, thy smooth way thorny, and that also confounded all that sought thy destruction. It was I that set -Mr Godly-fear to work in Mansoul. It was I that stirred up thy conscience and understanding, thy will and thy affections, after thy great and woful decay. It was I that put life into thee, O Mansoul, to seek me, that thou mightcst find me, and, in thy finding, find thine own health, happiness, and salvation. It was I that fetched the second time the Biabolonians out of Man- soul; it was I that overcame thenr, and that destroyed them before thy face. "And now, my Mansoul, I am returned to thee in peace, and thy transgressions against me are as if they had not been. Nor shall it be with thee as informer days, but I will do better for thee than at thy beginning. For yet a little while, O my Mansoul, even after a few more times are gone over thy head, I will (but be not thou troubled at what I say) take down this famous town of Man- „, / i' /• soul, stick and stone, to the ground. And I w ,•/ fj-f garments, your garments, the garments that I gave ^ "^ J J thee, be defiled or spotted by the flesh, Jude ver. 23. Keep thy garments always white, and let thy head lack no ointment. " My Mansoul, I liave oft-times delivered thee from the designs, plots, attempts, and conspiracies ofDiabolus, and for all this I ask thee nothing, but that tliou render not tome evil for good, but that thou bear in mind my love, and the continuation of my kin(hiess to my beloved Mansoul, so as to provoke thee to walk, in thy measure, according to the benefit bestowed on thee. Of old the sacrifices were bound with cords to the horns of the golden altar. Consider what is said to thee, O my blessed Mansoul. " O my Mansoul, 1 have lived, I have died; I live, and will die no more for thee, I live, that thou mayest not die. Because 1 live thou shalt live also. 1 reconciled thee to my father by the blood of my cross, and being reconciled tliou slialt live through me. I will pray for thee, I will fight for thee, I will yet do thee good. "Nothing can hurt thee but sin, nothing can grieve me but sin; BY JOHN BUNYAN. 251 „ ^, . , nothing can make thee base before thy foes Ijut sin: Sin their sreat . i , , <- • -\t i •= take heed ot sin my Mansoul. ^'^^''"^' "And dost thou know why I at first, and do still suffer Diabolonians to dwell within thy walls, O JNIansoul? It is to keep thee waiting, to try thy love, to make thee watchful, and to cause thee yet to prize my noble captains, their soldiers, and my mercy. "It is also that yet thou mayest be made to remember whata de plorable condition thou once Avast in, I mean when, not some, but all did dwell, not in thy wall, but in thy castle, and in thy strong hold, O Mansoul. "O my Mansoul, should I slay all them within, many there be TV f 1 f 1 ^vithout that would bring thee into bondage; for were J J 'j all these within cut off, those Avithout Avould find thee recommended. , . , . . ^ . , , , sleepmg, and then as in a moment tliey would SAval- loAV up my Mansoul. I therefore left them in thee, not to do thee hurt (the Avhich they yetAvill, if thou hearken to tliem, and serve them,) but to do thee good, the which they must, if thou Avatchand fight against them. KnoAV therefore, that Avhatever they shall tempt thee to, my design is, that they should drive thee, not further off, but nearer to my father, to learn thee Avar, to make petitioning desira- ble to thee, and to make thee little in thy OAvn eyes. Hearken dili- gently to this my iNIansoul. "Show me then thy love, my Mansoul, and let not those that are within thy Avails, take thy affection off from him that hath redeemed thy soul. Yea, let the sight of a Diabolonian heighten thy love to me. I came once, and twice, and thrice, to save thee from the poison of those arroAvs that AAOuld have Avrought thy death; stand for me, my friend, my Mansoul, against the Diabolonians, and I will stand for thee before my Father, and all his court. Love me against temptation; and I Avill love thee, notwithstanding thine in- firmities. "O my Mansoul, remember Avhat my captains, my soldiers, and mine engines haAC done for thee. They have fought for tliee, they have borne much at thy hands to do thee good, O Mansoul. Hadst thou not had them to help thee, Diabolus had certainly made a hand oftliee. Nourish them thei'efore, my Mansoul. When thou dost Avell, they Avill be Avell; Avhen thou dost ill, they Avill be ill, and sick and weak. Make not my captains sick, O Mansoul; for if they be sick, thou canst net be Avell; if they be Aveak, thou canst not be strong; if they be faint, thou canst not be stout and Aaliant for ^ ,. thy king, O Mansoul. Nor must thou think always .._ u f] to live by sense, thou must live upon my Avord. Thou 1 !• r-i J must believe, O my Mansoul, Avhen I am for thee, •word of God. ,, , ^ t i i i ^i • i . r •^ that yet 1 love and bear thee upon mine heart tor ever 252 THE HOLY WAK. "Remember tlierefore, O my Mansoul, tl»at thou art beloved of me: as I have therefore taught thee to wat-ch, to fight, to pray, and to make war against my foes, so now I command thee to believe tliat my love is constant to thee. O my Mansoul, now have I set my heart, my love upon thee, watch: "Behold I lay none other burden upon thee, than what thou hast already, hold fast till I come," Rev. ii. 24, 25."* * In this sweet and truly evan'^elical apeecli, the dear Lord Jesus is represen- ted as making a recapitulation ofhisjjracious dealings with the souls of Jiis peo- ple. Salvation is uniformly ascribed to the free mercy of the father and the precious blood of ihe son. Every gracious soul will cordially say. Not unto me, not unto mo, O Lord, but to thy name be all the glory. Iiumaiuicl then informs them of his intention to take down the present town of Mansoul, and to rebuild it in a more glorious manner; in other words, to remove the believer to glory, and raise up his mortal body to everlasting honour and happiness, when sin, sorrow and temptation shall never more be known. Till this event take place, he directs his people to keep their garments white and clean— tliat is, to be holy in all manner of conversation and godliness; to watch carefully against sin, which is the only thing that can hurj them, and to live every day by faith in the word of God. - Thus have we followed the ingenious and judicious author through this truly ejicellent work, making use of his own marginal key to unlock the curious cabinet, and expose the valuable contents. May every reader be found among those who are restored by grace to the kingdom of Inimanuel, and who, having overcome, shall sit down witli him on his throne of glory. • To Him, even to the Lamb that was slain, who hath redeemed us to God by his blood; to Him be glory, iu all the churches. worl'J witliout end. Amen. THE END. ■W'0W ■>ir.